Selected quad for the lemma: reason_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
reason_n according_a sun_n zone_n 17 3 12.5231 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A35345 The true intellectual system of the universe. The first part wherein all the reason and philosophy of atheism is confuted and its impossibility demonstrated / by R. Cudworth. Cudworth, Ralph, 1617-1688. 1678 (1678) Wing C7471; ESTC R27278 1,090,859 981

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

power_n of_o one_o god_n personate_v and_o deify_v by_o the_o pagan_n though_o they_o have_v a_o appearance_n also_o of_o many_o distinct_a god_n yet_o be_v they_o real_o nothing_o but_o several_a denomination_n of_o one_o supreme_a god_n who_o as_o yet_o be_v consider_v as_o a_o thing_n distinct_a from_o the_o world_n and_o nature_n but_o last_o as_o god_n be_v suppose_v by_o these_o pagan_n not_o only_o to_o pervade_v all_o thing_n and_o to_o fill_v all_o thing_n but_o also_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v himself_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o thing_n so_o be_v he_o call_v also_o by_o the_o name_n of_o every_o thing_n or_o every_o thing_n call_v by_o his_o name_n that_o be_v the_o several_a thing_n of_o nature_n and_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v themselves_o verbal_o deify_v by_o these_o pagan_n and_o call_v god_n and_o goddess_n not_o that_o they_o real_o account_v they_o such_o in_o themselves_o but_o that_o they_o think_v fit_a in_o this_o manner_n to_o acknowledge_v god_n in_o they_o as_o the_o author_n of_o they_o all_o for_o thus_o the_o pagan_n in_o st._n austin_n usque_fw-la adeone_fw-mi inquiunt_fw-la majores_fw-la nostros_fw-la insipientes_fw-la fuisse_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la haec_fw-la nescirent_fw-la munera_fw-la divina_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la deos_fw-la can_v you_o think_v that_o our_o pagan_a ancestor_n be_v so_o sottish_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v but_o divine_a gift_n and_o not_o god_n themselves_o and_o cicero_n also_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o meaning_n of_o their_o thus_o deify_v these_o thing_n of_o nature_n be_v only_o to_o signify_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o force_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v divine_a and_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o god_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o bring_v any_o great_a utility_n to_o mankind_n be_v not_o such_o without_o the_o divine_a goodness_n they_o conceive_v also_o that_o the_o invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a deity_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n aught_o to_o be_v worship_v in_o all_o its_o work_n and_o effect_n in_o which_o it_o have_v make_v itself_o visible_a 13._o according_o as_o they_o declare_v in_o that_o place_n of_o eusebius_n before_o cite_v in_o part_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o do_v not_o deify_v those_o visible_a body_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o star_n nor_o the_o other_o sensible_a part_n of_o the_o world_n themselves_o but_o those_o invisible_a power_n of_o the_o god_n over_o all_o that_o be_v display_v in_o they_o for_o they_o affirm_v that_o that_o god_n who_o be_v but_o one_o but_o yet_o fill_v all_o thing_n with_o his_o various_a power_n and_o pass_v through_o all_o thing_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v invisible_o and_o incorporeal_o present_a in_o all_o be_v reasonable_o to_o be_v worship_v in_o and_o by_o those_o visible_a thing_n athanasius_n b_o p._n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o greek_n reduce_v all_o the_o false_a god_n of_o the_o pagan_n under_o two_o general_a head_n the_o first_o poetical_a fictitious_a or_o fantastical_a god_n the_o second_o creature_n or_o real_a thing_n of_o nature_n deify_v by_o they_o his_o word_n be_v these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n since_o this_o reason_n or_o discourse_n of_o we_o have_v sufficient_o convince_v both_o the_o poetical_a god_n of_o the_o pagan_n to_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o and_o also_o that_o they_o who_o deify_v the_o creature_n be_v in_o a_o great_a error_n and_o so_o have_v confute_v the_o whole_a pagan_a idolatry_n prove_v it_o to_o be_v mere_a ungodliness_n and_o impiety_n there_o be_v nothing_o now_o but_o the_o true_a piety_n leave_v he_o who_o be_v worship_v by_o we_o christian_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n the_o lord_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o maker_n of_o all_o substance_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o according_a to_o athanasius_n the_o pagan_a poetic_a god_n be_v no_o real_a thing_n in_o nature_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o several_a notion_n and_o power_n of_o the_o one_o supreme_a god_n deify_v or_o several_a name_n of_o he_o so_o that_o athanasius_n his_o poetic_a god_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n fabulous_o devise_v by_o the_o poet_n be_v chief_o those_o two_o kind_n of_o pagan_a god_n first_o mention_v by_o we_o that_o be_v the_o various_a consideration_n of_o the_o one_o supreme_a numen_fw-la according_a to_o its_o general_a notion_n express_v by_o so_o many_o proper_a name_n and_o second_o his_o particular_a power_n diffuse_v through_o the_o world_n several_o personate_v and_o deify_v which_o consider_v as_o so_o many_o distinct_a deity_n be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a fiction_n and_o fancy_n without_o any_o reality_n and_o this_o do_v the_o pagan_n themselves_o in_o athanasius_n acknowledge_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1●_n they_o say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o those_o god_n be_v mere_o fictitious_a and_o that_o there_o do_v no_o where_o real_o exist_v any_o such_o jupiter_n or_o saturn_n or_o juno_n or_o mars_n but_o that_o the_o poet_n have_v feign_v they_o to_o be_v so_o many_o person_n exist_v to_o the_o deception_n of_o their_o auditor_n notwithstanding_o which_v that_o three_o sort_n of_o pagan_a god_n also_o mention_v by_o we_o which_o be_v inanimate_a substance_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n deify_v may_v well_o be_v account_v poetical_a god_n likewise_o because_o though_o those_o thing_n themselves_o be_v real_a and_o not_o feign_v yet_o be_v their_o personation_n and_o deification_n mere_a fiction_n and_o fancy_n and_o however_o the_o first_o occasion_n thereof_o spring_v from_o this_o theological_a opinion_n or_o persuasion_n that_o god_n who_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n aught_o to_o be_v worship_v in_o all_o thing_n especial_o he_o be_v himself_o invisible_a yet_o the_o make_n of_o those_o thing_n themselves_o therefore_o to_o be_v so_o many_o person_n and_o god_n be_v nothing_o but_o poetic_a fiction_n and_o phantastry_n according_o as_o their_o old_a mythology_n and_o allegorical_a fable_n of_o the_o god_n run_v much_o upon_o this_o strain_n xxxiv_o hitherto_o have_v we_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o pagan_n in_o general_n those_o also_o be_v include_v who_o suppose_v god_n to_o be_v a_o be_v elevate_v above_o the_o world_n that_o they_o agree_v in_o these_o two_o thing_n first_o the_o break_v and_o crumble_a as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o simple_a deity_n and_o parcel_a out_o of_o the_o same_o into_o many_o particular_a notion_n and_o partial_a consideration_n according_a to_o the_o various_a manifestation_n of_o its_o power_n and_o providence_n in_o the_o world_n by_o the_o personate_n and_o deify_n of_o which_o several_o they_o make_v as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o god_n of_o one._n the_o chief_a ground_n whereof_o be_v this_o because_o they_o consider_v not_o the_o deity_n according_a to_o its_o simple_a nature_n and_o abstract_o only_a but_o concrete_o also_o with_o the_o world_n as_o he_o display_v himself_o therein_o pervade_v all_o and_o diffuse_v his_o virtue_n through_o all_o for_o as_o the_o sun_n reflect_v by_o grosser_n vapour_n be_v sometime_o multiply_v and_o the_o same_o object_n behold_v through_o a_o polyedrous_a glass_n by_o reason_n of_o those_o many_o superficies_n be_v represent_v in_o several_a place_n at_o once_o be_v thereby_o render_v manifold_a to_o the_o spectator_n so_o one_o and_o the_o same_o supreme_a god_n consider_v concrete_o with_o the_o world_n as_o manifest_v his_o several_a power_n and_o virtue_n in_o it_o be_v multiply_v into_o several_a name_n not_o without_o the_o appearance_n of_o so_o many_o several_a go_n whereas_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o those_o ancient_a pagan_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o have_v many_o name_n all_o one_o with_o that_o which_o have_v many_o power_n according_a to_o this_o of_o callimachus_n concern_v diana_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o of_o virgil_n concern_v allecto_n tibi_fw-la nomina_fw-la mille_fw-la mille_fw-la nocendi_fw-la artes._n and_o according_o the_o many_o pagan_a god_n be_v in_o plato_n cratylus_n interpret_v as_o the_o many_o power_n of_o one_o god_n diffuse_v through_o the_o world_n and_o the_o pagan_a theologer_n seem_v to_o conceive_v this_o to_o be_v more_o suitable_a to_o the_o pomp_n state_n and_o grandeur_n of_o the_o supreme_a god_n for_o he_o to_o be_v consider_v diffusive_o and_o call_v by_o many_o name_n signify_v his_o many_o several_a virtue_n and_o power_n polyonymy_n be_v by_o they_o account_v a_o honour_n rather_o than_o to_o be_v contract_v and_o shrink_v all_o up_o into_o one_o general_n notion_n of_o a_o perfect_a mind_n the_o maker_n or_o creator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o second_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o pagan_n agree_v
where_n of_o that_o be_v indistant_a and_o vnextend_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n porphyrius_n 2●2_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o ought_v therefore_o in_o our_o disquisition_n concern_v corporeal_a and_o incorporeal_a being_n to_o conserve_v the_o property_n of_o each_o and_o not_o to_o confound_v their_o nature_n but_o especial_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o our_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n do_v not_o so_o far_o impose_v upon_o our_o judgement_n as_o to_o make_v we_o attribute_v to_o incorporeal_n what_o proper_o belong_v to_o body_n only_o for_o we_o be_v all_o accustom_a to_o body_n but_o as_o for_o incorporeal_n scarce_o any_o one_o reach_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o man_n always_o fluctuate_a about_o they_o and_o diffide_v they_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o power_n of_o their_o imagination_n where_o afterward_o he_o propound_v a_o form_n for_o this_o how_o we_o shall_v think_v of_o incorporeal_n so_o as_o not_o to_o confound_v their_o nature_n with_o corporeal_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o indistant_n and_o vnextended_a deity_n be_v the_o whole_a of_o it_o present_v in_o infinite_a part_n of_o the_o distant_a world_n neither_o divide_v as_o apply_v part_n to_o part_n nor_o yet_o multiply_v into_o many_o whole_n according_a to_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o partake_v thereof_o but_o the_o whole_a of_o it_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o number_n be_v present_a to_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o bulkie_a world_n and_o to_o every_o one_o of_o those_o many_o thing_n in_o it_o vndivide_o and_o vnmultiply_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n partake_v thereof_o divide_o it_o be_v grant_v therefore_o by_o these_o ancient_n that_o this_o vnextend_v and_o indistant_a nature_n of_o incorporeal_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o thing_n altogether_o vnimaginable_a and_o this_o be_v conclude_v by_o they_o to_o be_v the_o only_a reason_n why_o so_o many_o have_v pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v impossible_a because_o they_o attend_v only_o to_o sense_n and_o imagination_n and_o make_v they_o the_o only_a measure_n of_o thing_n and_o truth_n it_o have_v be_v according_o maintain_v by_o divers_a of_o they_o as_o porphyrius_n tell_v we_o that_o imagination_n and_o intellection_n be_v but_o two_o different_a name_n 〈◊〉_d for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o name_n only_o and_o no_o more_o betwixt_o mind_n and_o fancy_n fancy_n and_o imagination_n in_o rational_a animal_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o intellection_n but_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o no_o man_n can_v have_v any_o phantasm_n or_o imagination_n of_o and_o yet_o be_v they_o notwithstanding_o by_o all_o unquestionable_o acknowledge_v for_o entity_n or_o reality_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o we_o must_v have_v some_o other_o faculty_n in_o we_o which_o extend_v beyond_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n reason_n indeed_o dictate_v that_o whatsoever_o can_v either_o do_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n must_v therefore_o be_v undoubted_o something_o but_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v vnextend_v and_o have_v no_o distant_a part_n one_o without_o another_o must_v therefore_o needs_o be_v nothing_o be_v no_o common_a notion_n but_o the_o spurious_a suggestion_n of_o imagination_n only_o and_o a_o vulgar_a error_n there_o need_v to_o be_v no_o fear_n at_o all_o lest_o a_o be_v infinite_o wise_a and_o powerful_a which_o act_v upon_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o all_o the_o part_n thereof_o in_o frame_v and_o govern_v the_o same_o shall_v prove_v a_o nonentity_n mere_o for_o want_v of_o bulk_n and_o extension_n or_o because_o it_o swell_v not_o out_o into_o space_n and_o distance_n as_o body_n do_v therefore_o vanish_v into_o nothing_o nor_o do_v active_a force_n and_o power_n as_o such_o depend_v upon_o bulk_n and_o extension_n because_o then_o whatsoever_o have_v the_o great_a bulk_n will_v have_v the_o great_a activity_n there_o be_v therefore_o two_o kind_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o universe_n the_o first_o corporeal_a which_o be_v nothing_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bulk_n or_o tumor_n devoid_a of_o all_o self-active_a power_n the_o second_o incorporeal_a which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d substantial_a power_n vigour_n and_o activity_n which_o though_o they_o act_v upon_o bulk_n and_o extension_n yet_o be_v themselves_o vnbulkie_a and_o devoid_a of_o quantity_n and_o dimension_n however_o they_o have_v a_o certain_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o they_o in_o another_o sense_n 3._o a_o essential_a profundity_n according_a to_o this_o of_o simplicius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o corporeal_a substance_n be_v simple_o divisible_a some_o part_n of_o it_o be_v here_o and_o some_o there_o but_o intellectual_a substance_n be_v indivisible_a and_o without_o dimension_n though_o it_o have_v much_o of_o depth_n and_o profundity_n in_o it_o in_o another_o sense_n but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vnimaginable_a even_o in_o body_n itself_o be_v evident_a whether_o you_o will_v suppose_v it_o to_o be_v infinite_o divisible_a or_o not_o as_o you_o must_v of_o necessity_n suppose_v one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o and_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o always_o to_o pronounce_v of_o corporeal_a thing_n themselves_o according_a to_o imagination_n be_v manifest_a from_o hence_o because_o though_o astronomical_a reason_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o sun_n be_v real_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o time_n big_a than_o the_o whole_a earth_n yet_o can_v we_o not_o possible_o for_o all_o that_o imagine_v the_o sun_n of_o such_o a_o bigness_n nor_o indeed_o the_o earth_n itself_o half_o so_o big_a as_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v partly_o because_o we_o never_o have_v a_o sense_n or_o sight_n of_o any_o such_o vast_a bigness_n at_o once_o as_o that_o of_o either_o of_o they_o and_o partly_o because_o our_o sense_n always_o represent_v the_o sun_n to_o we_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o of_o a_o foot_n diameter_n and_o we_o be_v accustom_v always_o to_o imagine_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o appearance_n of_o sense_n be_v not_o able_a to_o frame_v any_o imagination_n of_o it_o as_o very_o much_o big_a wherefore_o if_o imagination_n be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v nor_o make_v the_o criterion_n or_o measure_n of_o truth_n as_o to_o sensible_a thing_n themselves_o much_o less_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v as_o to_z thing_n insensible_a beside_o all_o which_o the_o ancient_a incorporealist_n argue_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o it_o be_v as_o difficult_a for_o we_o to_o conceive_v a_o substance_n who_o duration_n be_v vnextend_v or_o vnstretch_v out_o in_o time_n into_o past_a present_a and_o future_a and_o therefore_o without_o beginning_n as_o that_o which_o be_v vnextend_v as_o to_o part_n place_n or_o space_n in_o length_n breadth_n and_o thickness_n yet_o do_v reason_n pronounce_v that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v not_o only_o a_o duration_n without_o beginning_n but_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o timeless_a eternity_n or_o a_o permanent_a duration_n differ_v from_o that_o successive_a flux_n of_o time_n which_o be_v one_o of_o plato_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thing_n generate_v or_o that_o have_v a_o beginning_n this_o parity_n of_o reason_n be_v by_o plotinus_n thus_o insist_v on_o 669._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o deny_v local_a extension_n to_o the_o deity_n must_v we_o also_o deny_v temporal_a distance_n to_o the_o same_o and_o affirm_v that_o god_n be_v not_o in_o time_n but_o above_o time_n in_o eternity_n for_o as_o much_o as_o time_n be_v always_o scatter_v and_o stretch_v out_o in_o length_n and_o distance_n one_o moment_n follow_v after_o another_o but_o eternity_n remain_v in_o the_o same_o without_o any_o flux_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o outgo_v time_n and_o transcend_v the_o flux_n thereof_o though_o seem_v to_o be_v stretch_v and_o spin_v out_o more_o into_o length_n now_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o can_v frame_v a_o conception_n of_o such_o a_o timeless_a eternity_n be_v only_o because_o ourselves_o be_v essential_o involve_v in_o time_n and_o according_o be_v our_o conception_n chain_v fetter_v and_o confine_v to_o that_o narrow_a and_o dark_a dungeon_n that_o ourselves_o be_v imprison_v in_o notwithstanding_o which_o our_o free_a faculty_n assure_v we_o of_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o be_v which_o far_o transcend_v ourselves_o to_o wit_n one_o that_o be_v infinite_o perfect_a we_o have_v by_o mean_n hereof_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o certain_a vaticination_n of_o such_o a_o stand_v timeless_a eternity_n as_o its_o duration_n but_o as_o for_o that_o conceit_n of_o immaterial_a or_o incorporeal_a body_n or_o that_o god_n and_o humane_a soul_n be_v not_o otherwise_o incorporeal_a then_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o thin_a and_o
part_n we_o neither_o call_v philology_n nor_o yet_o philosophy_n our_o mistress_n but_o serve_v ourselves_o of_o either_o as_o occasion_n require_v as_o for_o the_o last_o chapter_n though_o it_o promise_v only_o a_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o atheistick_a ground_n yet_o do_v we_o therein_o also_o demonstrate_v the_o absolute_a impossibility_n of_o all_o atheism_n and_o the_o actual_a existence_n of_o a_o god_n we_o say_v demonstrate_v not_o a_o priori_fw-la which_o be_v impossible_a and_o contradictious_a but_o by_o necessary_a inference_n from_o principle_n altogether_o vndeniable_a for_o we_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n grant_v to_o the_o atheist_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o probable_a persuasion_n or_o opinion_n to_o be_v have_v of_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n without_o any_o certain_a knowledge_n or_o science_n nevertheless_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v from_o hence_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v read_v these_o demonstrat●ons_n of_o we_o and_o understand_v all_o the_o word_n of_o they_o must_v therefore_o of_o necessity_n be_v present_o convince_v whether_o he_o will_v or_o no_o and_o put_v out_o of_o all_o manner_n of_o doubt_n or_o hesitancy_n concern_v the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n for_o we_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o some_o have_v affirm_v that_o be_v there_o any_o interest_n of_o life_n any_o concernment_n of_o appetite_n and_o passion_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o geometrical_a theorem_n themselves_o as_o of_o a_o triangle_n have_v three_o angle_n equal_a to_o two_o right_a whereby_o man_n judgement_n may_v be_v cloud_v and_o bribe_v notwithstanding_o all_o the_o demonstration_n of_o they_o many_o will_v remain_v at_o least_o sceptical_a about_o they_o wherefore_o mere_a speculation_n and_o dry_v mathematical_a reason_n in_o mind_n unpurify_v and_o have_v a_o contrary_a interest_n of_o carnality_n and_o a_o heavy_a load_n of_o infidelity_n and_o distrust_n sink_v they_o down_o can_v alone_o beget_v a_o unshaken_a confidence_n and_o assurance_n of_o so_o high_a a_o truth_n as_o this_o the_o existence_n of_o one_o perfect_a understanding_n be_v the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a also_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o mind_n cleanse_v and_o purge_v from_o vice_n may_v without_o syllogistical_a reason_n and_o mathematical_a demonstration_n have_v a_o undoubted_a assurance_n of_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o philosopher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d purity_n possess_v man_n with_o a_o assurance_n of_o the_o best_a thing_n whether_o this_o assurance_n be_v call_v a_o vaticination_n or_o divine_a sagacity_n as_o it_o be_v by_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n or_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture-faith_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a believe_v of_o historical_a thing_n and_o upon_o inartificiall_a argument_n or_o testimony_n only_o but_o a_o certain_a high_a and_o divine_a power_n in_o the_o soul_n that_o peculiar_o correspond_v with_o the_o deity_n notwithstanding_o which_v knowledge_n or_o science_n add_v to_o this_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n advice_n will_v make_v it_o more_o firm_a and_o steadfast_a and_o the_o better_a able_a to_o resist_v those_o assault_n of_o sophistical_a reason_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o it_o in_o this_o five_o chapter_n as_o sometime_o elsewhere_o we_o think_v ourselves_o concern_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n goodness_n and_o perfection_n against_o atheist_n to_o maintain_v with_o all_o the_o ancient_a philosophic_a theist_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o creation_n also_o or_o that_o the_o whole_a system_n of_o thing_n take_v all_o together_o can_v not_o have_v be_v better_o make_v and_o order_v then_o it_o be_v and_o indeed_o this_o divine_a goodness_n and_o perfection_n as_o display_v and_o manifest_v itself_o in_o the_o work_v of_o nature_n and_o providence_n be_v suppose_v in_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n when_o that_o be_v define_v to_o be_v the_o substance_n and_o evidence_n rerum_fw-la sperandarum_fw-la that_o be_v of_o whatsoever_o be_v by_o a_o good_a man_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o notwithstanding_o which_v it_o be_v far_o from_o our_o intention_n therefore_o to_o conclude_v that_o nothing_o neither_o in_o nature_n nor_o providence_n can_v be_v otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v or_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v to_o the_o free_a will_n and_o choice_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o though_o we_o do_v in_o the_o three_o section_n insist_v large_o upon_o that_o ancient_a pythagorick_a cabbala_n that_o soul_n be_v always_o unite_v to_o some_o body_n or_o other_o as_o also_o that_o all_o rational_a and_o intellectual_a creature_n consist_v of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o suggest_v several_a thing_n from_o reason_n and_o christian_a antiquity_n in_o favour_n of_o they_o both_o yet_o will_v we_o not_o be_v understand_v to_o dogmatise_v in_o either_o of_o they_o but_o to_o submit_v all_o to_o better_a judgement_n again_o we_o shall_v here_o advertise_v the_o reader_n though_o we_o have_v caution_v concern_v it_o in_o the_o book_n itself_o that_o in_o our_o defence_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n against_o the_o atheist_n however_o we_o think_v ourselves_o concern_v to_o say_v the_o utmost_a that_o possible_o we_o can_v in_o way_n of_o vindication_n of_o the_o ancient_n who_o general_o maintain_v it_o to_o be_v unextend_v which_o to_o some_o seem_v a_o absolute_a impossibility_n yet_o we_o will_v not_o be_v suppose_v ourselves_o dogmatical_o to_o assert_v any_o more_o in_o this_o point_n than_o what_o all_o incorporealist_n agree_v in_o that_o there_o be_v a_o substance_n specifical_o distinct_a from_o body_n namely_o such_o as_o consist_v not_o of_o part_n separable_a from_o one_o another_o and_o which_o can_v penetrate_v body_n and_o last_o be_v self-active_a and_o have_v a_o internal_a energy_n distinct_a from_o that_o of_o local_a motion_n and_o thus_o much_o be_v undeniable_o evince_v by_o the_o argument_n before_o propose_v but_o whether_o this_o substance_n be_v altogether_o unextend_v or_o extend_v otherwise_o then_o body_n we_o shall_v leave_v every_o man_n to_o make_v his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v it_o furthermore_o we_o think_v fit_a here_o to_o suggest_v that_o whereas_o throughout_o this_o chapter_n and_o whole_a book_n we_o constant_o oppose_v the_o generation_n of_o soul_n that_o be_v the_o production_n of_o life_n cogitation_n and_o understanding_n out_o of_o dead_a and_o senseless_a matter_n and_o assert_v all_o soul_n to_o be_v as_o substantial_a as_o matter_n itself_o this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o we_o out_o of_o any_o fond_a addictedness_n to_o pythagorick_a whimsy_n nor_o indeed_o out_o of_o a_o mere_a partial_a regard_n to_o that_o cause_n of_o theism_n neither_o which_o we_o be_v engage_v in_o though_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o be_v tender_a of_o that_o too_o but_o because_o we_o be_v enforce_v thereunto_o by_o dry_a mathematical_a reason_n it_o be_v as_o certain_a to_o we_o as_o any_o thing_n in_o all_o geometry_n that_o cogitation_n and_o understanding_n can_v never_o possible_o result_v out_o of_o magnitude_n figure_n sites_n and_o local_a motion_n which_o be_v all_o that_o ourselves_o can_v allow_v to_o body_n however_o compound_v together_o nor_o indeed_o in_o that_o other_o way_n of_o quality_n be_v it_o better_o conceivable_a how_o they_o shall_v emerge_n out_o of_o hot_a and_o cold_a moist_a and_o dry_a thick_a and_o thin_a according_a to_o the_o anaximandrian_a atheism_n and_o they_o who_o can_v persuade_v themselves_o of_o the_o contrary_a may_v believe_v that_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v cause_v by_o any_o thing_n upon_o which_o supposition_n we_o confess_v it_o impossible_a to_o we_o to_o prove_v the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n from_o the_o phaenomena_n in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o five_o chapter_n because_o the_o atheist_n do_v in_o the_o last_o place_n pretend_v theism_n and_o religion_n to_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o civil_a sovereignty_n we_o be_v necessitate_v brief_o to_o unravel_v and_o confute_v all_o the_o atheistick_a ethic_n and_o politic_n though_o this_o more_o proper_o belong_v to_o our_o second_o book_n intend_v where_o we_o make_v it_o plain_o to_o appear_v that_o the_o atheist_n artificial_a and_o factitious_a justice_n be_v nothing_o but_o will_n and_o word_n and_o that_o they_o give_v to_o civil_a sovereign_n no_o right_a nor_o authority_n at_o all_o but_o only_o belluine_a liberty_n and_o brutish_a force_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o we_o assert_v justice_n and_o obligation_n not_o make_v by_o law_n and_o command_n but_o in_o nature_n and_o prove_v this_o together_o with_o conscience_n and_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o only_a basis_n of_o civil_a authority_n so_o do_v we_o also_o maintain_v all_o the_o right_n of_o civil_a sovereign_n give_v both_o to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n and_o now_o have_v make_v all_o our_o apology_n and_o reflection_n we_o have_v
express_v by_o sanchuniathon_n in_o his_o description_n of_o the_o phoenician_n theology_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o turbid_v and_o dark_a chaos_n and_o the_o second_o be_v intimate_v in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n be_v affect_v with_o love_n towards_o its_o own_o principle_n perhaps_o express_v the_o force_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n meracheph_v and_o both_o of_o they_o imple_n an_o understanding_n prolifical_a goodness_n form_v and_o hatch_n the_o corporeal_a world_n into_o this_o perfection_n or_o else_o a_o plastic_a power_n subordinate_a to_o it_o zeno_n who_o be_v also_o original_o a_o phoenician_n tell_v we_o that_o hesiod_n chaos_n be_v water_n and_o that_o the_o material_a heaven_n as_o well_o as_o earth_n be_v make_v out_o of_o water_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o best_a interpeter_n be_v the_o genuine_a sense_n of_o scripture_n 2_o pet._n 3.5_o by_o which_o water_n some_o perhaps_o will_v understand_v a_o chaos_n of_o atom_n confuse_o move_v but_o whether_o thales_n be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o atomical_a physiology_n or_o no_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o assert_v beside_o the_o soul_n immortality_n a_o deity_n distinct_a from_o the_o corporeal_a world_n we_o pass_v to_o pythagoras_n who_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o to_o have_v be_v a_o atomist_n and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v also_o that_o he_o be_v a_o profess_a incorporealist_n that_o he_o assert_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o consequent_o its_o immateriality_n be_v evident_a from_o his_o doctrine_n of_o pre-existence_n and_o transmigration_n and_o that_o he_o likewise_o hold_v a_o incorporeal_a deity_n distinct_a from_o the_o world_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o question_v by_o any_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o prove_v it_o because_o there_o be_v no_o monument_n of_o his_o extant_a perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v do_v from_o hence_o because_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a propagator_n of_o that_o doctrine_n among_o the_o greek_n concern_v three_o hypostasis_n in_o the_o deity_n for_o that_o plato_n and_o his_o follower_n hold_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d three_o hypostasis_n in_o the_o deity_n that_o be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v a_o thing_n very_o well_o know_v to_o all_o though_o we_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o these_o platonic_a hypostasis_n be_v exact_o the_o same_o with_o those_o in_o the_o christian_a trinity_n now_o plato_n himself_o sufficient_o intimate_v this_o not_o to_o have_v be_v his_o own_o invention_n and_o plotinus_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o ancient_a opinion_n before_o plato_n time_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o by_o some_o of_o the_o pythagorick_n wherefore_o i_o conceive_v this_o must_v needs_o be_v one_o of_o those_o pythagorick_a monstrosity_n which_o xenophon_n covert_o tax_v plato_n for_o entertain_v and_o mingle_v with_o the_o socratical_a philosophy_n as_o if_o he_o have_v thereby_o corrupt_v the_o purity_n and_o simplicity_n of_o it_o though_o a_o corporealist_n may_v pretend_v to_o be_v a_o theist_n yet_o i_o never_o hear_v that_o any_o of_o they_o do_v ever_o assert_v a_o trinity_n respective_o to_o the_o deity_n unless_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o i_o think_v not_o fit_a here_o to_o mention_v xxiii_o that_o parmenides_n who_o be_v likewise_o a_o pythagorean_n acknowledge_v a_o deity_n distinct_a from_o the_o corporeal_a world_n be_v evident_a from_o plato_n and_o plotinus_n tell_v we_o also_o that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o assert_v the_o triad_n of_o divine_a hypostasis_n moreover_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n among_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n before_o plato_n time_n between_o such_o as_o hold_v all_o thing_n to_o flow_v as_o namely_o heraclitus_n and_o cratylus_n and_o other_o who_o assert_v that_o some_o thing_n do_v stand_v and_o that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o certain_a immutable_a nature_n to_o wit_n a_o eternal_a mind_n together_o with_o eternal_a and_o immutable_a truth_n among_o which_o be_v parmenides_n and_o melissus_n the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v all_o corporealist_n this_o be_v the_o very_a reason_n why_o they_o make_v all_o thing_n to_o flow_v because_o they_o suppose_v all_o to_o be_v body_n though_o these_o be_v not_o therefore_o all_o of_o they_o atheist_n but_o the_o latter_a be_v all_o both_o incorporealist_n and_o theist_n for_o whosoever_o hold_v incorporeal_a substance_n must_v needs_o according_a to_o reason_n also_o assert_v a_o deity_n and_o although_o we_o do_v not_o before_o paticular_o mention_n parmenides_n among_o the_o atomical_a philosopher_n yet_o we_o conceive_v it_o to_o be_v manifest_a from_o hence_o that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o that_o tribe_n because_o he_o be_v a_o eminent_a asserter_n of_o that_o principle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o no_o real_a entity_n be_v either_o make_v or_o destroy_v generate_v or_o corrupt_v which_o we_o shall_v afterward_o plain_o show_v to_o be_v the_o grand_a fundamental_a principle_n of_o the_o atomical_a philosophy_n xxiv_o but_o whereas_o we_o do_v evident_o prove_v before_o that_o empedocles_n be_v a_o atomical_a physiologer_n it_o may_v notwithstanding_o with_o some_o colour_n of_o probability_n be_v doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v not_o a_o atheist_n or_o at_o least_o a_o corporealist_n because_o aristotle_n accuse_v he_o of_o these_o follow_a thing_n first_o of_o make_v knowledge_n to_o be_v sense_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o plain_a sign_n of_o a_o corporealist_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o next_o place_n also_o of_o compound_v the_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o four_o element_n make_v it_o to_o understand_v every_o corporeal_a thing_n by_o something_o of_o the_o same_o within_o itself_o as_o fire_n by_o fire_n and_o earth_n by_o earth_n and_o last_o of_o attribute_v much_o to_o fortune_n and_o affirm_v that_o divers_a of_o the_o part_n of_o animal_n be_v make_v such_o by_o chance_n and_o that_o there_o be_v at_o first_o certain_a mongrel_n animal_n fortuitous_o produce_v that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d such_o as_o have_v something_o of_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o ox_n together_o with_o the_o face_n of_o a_o man_n though_o they_o can_v not_o long_o continue_v which_o seem_v to_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o suspicion_n that_o empedocles_n atheize_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o democritus_n do_v to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o we_o reply_v that_o some_o other_o who_o have_v also_o read_v empedocles_n poem_n be_v of_o a_o different_a judgement_n from_o aristotle_n as_o to_o that_o conceive_v empedocles_n not_o to_o make_v sense_n but_o reason_v the_o criterion_n of_o truth_n thus_o empiricus_n inform_v we_o other_o say_v that_o according_a to_o empedocles_n the_o criterion_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o sense_n but_o right_a reason_n and_o also_o that_o right_a reason_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o divine_a the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o humane_a of_o which_o the_o divine_a be_v inexpressible_a but_o the_o humane_a declarable_a and_o there_o may_v be_v several_a passage_n cite_v out_o of_o those_o fragment_n of_o empedocles_n his_o poem_n yet_o leave_v to_o confirm_v this_o but_o we_o shall_v produce_v only_o this_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o this_o sense_n suspend_v thy_o assent_n to_o the_o corporeal_a sense_n and_o consider_v every_o thing_n clear_o with_o thy_o mind_n or_o reason_n and_o as_o to_o the_o second_o crimination_n aristotle_n have_v much_o weaken_v his_o own_o testimony_n here_o by_o accuse_v plato_n also_o of_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d plato_n compound_v the_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o four_o element_n because_o like_a be_v know_v by_o like_a and_o thing_n be_v from_o their_o principle_n wherefore_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o empedocles_n may_v be_v no_o more_o guilty_a of_o this_o fault_n of_o make_v the_o soul_n corporeal_a and_o to_o consist_v of_o earth_n water_n air_n and_o fire_n than_o plato_n be_v who_o in_o all_o man_n judgement_n be_v as_o free_v from_o it_o as_o aristotle_n himself_o if_o not_o more_o for_o empedocles_n do_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o pythagoras_n before_o he_o and_o plato_n after_o he_o hold_v the_o transmigration_n of_o soul_n and_o consequent_o both_o their_o future_a immortality_n and_o preexistence_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o assert_v their_o incorporeity_n plutarch_n right_o declare_v this_o to_o have_v be_v his_o opinion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o as_o well_o those_o who_o be_v yet_o unborn_a as_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a have_v a_o be_v he_o also_o assert_v humane_a soul_n to_o be_v here_o in_o a_o lapse_v state_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wanderer_n stranger_n and_o fugitive_n from_o god_n declare_v as_o plotinus_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o soul_n sin_v shall_v
be_v before_o democritus_n and_o lencippus_fw-la be_v all_o of_o they_o incorporealist_n join_v theology_n and_o pneumatology_n the_o doctrine_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n and_o a_o deity_n together_o with_o their_o atomical_a physiology_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n express_o note_v concern_v ecphantus_n the_o pythagorean_n in_o stobaeus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ecphantus_n hold_v the_o corporeal_a world_n to_o consist_v of_o atom_n but_o yet_o to_o be_v order_v and_o govern_v by_o a_o divine_a providence_n that_o be_v he_o join_v atomology_n and_o theology_n both_o together_o and_o the_o same_o be_v also_o observe_v of_o arcesilas_n or_o perhaps_o archelaus_n by_o sidonius_n apollinaris_n post_fw-la hos_fw-la arcesilaus_n divinâ_fw-la mente_fw-la paratam_fw-la conjicit_fw-la hanc_fw-la molem_fw-la confectam_fw-la partibus_fw-la illis_fw-la quas_fw-la atomos_fw-la vocat_fw-la ipse_fw-la leves_fw-la now_o i_o say_v as_o ecphantus_n and_o archelaus_n assert_v the_o corporeal_a world_n to_o be_v make_v of_o atom_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o hold_v a_o incorporeal_a deity_n distinct_a from_o the_o same_o as_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o activity_n in_o it_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v all_o the_o other_o ancient_a atomist_n general_o before_o democritus_n join_v theology_n and_o incorporealism_n with_o their_o atomical_a physiology_n they_o do_v atomize_v as_o well_o as_o he_o but_o they_o do_v not_o atheize_v but_o that_o atheistical_a atomology_n be_v a_o thing_n first_o set_v on_o foot_n afterward_o by_o leucippus_n and_o democritus_n xxvii_o but_o because_o many_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o strong_o possess_v with_o this_o prejudice_n as_o if_o atheism_n be_v a_o natural_a and_o necessary_a appendix_n to_o atomism_n and_o therefore_o will_v conclude_v that_o the_o same_o person_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v atomist_n and_o incorporealist_n or_o theist_n we_o shall_v further_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o no_o inconsistency_n betwixt_o the_o atomical_a physiology_n and_o theology_n but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a a_o most_o natural_a cognation_n between_o they_o and_o this_o we_o shall_v do_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o by_o inquire_v into_o the_o origin_n of_o this_o philosophy_n and_o consider_v what_o ground_n or_o principle_n of_o reason_n they_o be_v which_o first_o lead_v the_o ancient_n into_o this_o atomical_a or_o mechanical_a way_n of_o physiologize_v and_o second_o by_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o intrinsical_a constitution_n of_o this_o physiology_n be_v such_o that_o whosoever_o entertain_v it_o if_o he_o do_v but_o thorough_o understand_v it_o must_v of_o necessity_n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v something_o else_o in_o the_o world_n beside_o body_n first_o therefore_o this_o atomical_a physiology_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v its_o rise_n and_o origin_n from_o the_o strength_n of_o reason_n exert_v its_o own_o inward_a active_a power_n and_o vigour_n and_o thereby_o bear_v itself_o up_o against_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o sense_n and_o at_o length_n prevail_v over_o they_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o ancient_n consider_v and_o revolve_v the_o idea_n of_o their_o own_o mind_n find_v that_o they_o have_v a_o clear_a and_o distinct_a conception_n of_o two_o thing_n as_o the_o general_a head_n and_o principle_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o universe_n the_o one_o whereof_o be_v passive_a matter_n and_o the_o other_o active_a power_n vigour_n and_o virtue_n to_o the_o latter_a of_o which_o belong_v both_o cogitation_n and_o the_o power_n of_o move_a matter_n whether_o by_o express_a consciousness_n or_o no._n both_o which_o together_o may_v be_v call_v by_o one_o general_n name_n of_o life_n so_o that_o they_o make_v these_o two_o general_a head_n of_o be_v or_o entity_n passive_a matter_n or_o bulk_n and_o self_n activity_n or_o life_n the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v common_o call_v by_o the_o ancient_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o suffer_v and_o receive_v and_o the_o latter_a the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d philo._n the_o active_a principle_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o from_o whence_o motion_n spring_v in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la say_v cicero_n according_a to_o the_o general_n sense_n of_o the_o ancient_n duo_o quaerenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la vnum_fw-la quae_fw-la materia_fw-la sit_fw-la ex_fw-la qua_fw-la quaeque_fw-la res_fw-la efficiat●●_n alterum_fw-la quae_fw-la res_fw-la sit_fw-la quae_fw-la quicque_n efficiat_a there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v inquire_v after_o in_o nature_n one_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o which_o every_o thing_n be_v make_v another_o what_o be_v the_o active_a cause_n or_o efficient_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n seneca_n esse_fw-la debet_fw-la aliquid_fw-la vnde_fw-la siat_a deinde_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la fiat_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la causa_fw-la illud_fw-la materia_fw-la there_o must_v be_v something_o out_o of_o which_o a_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o then_o something_o by_o which_o it_o be_v make_v the_o latter_a be_v proper_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o former_a the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o corporeal_a thing_n and_o their_o difference_n that_o there_o must_v be_v both_o matter_n and_o a_o active_a power_n for_o the_o production_n of_o they_o and_o so_o also_o that_o of_o aristotle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o from_o whence_o the_o principle_n of_o motion_n be_v be_v one_o cause_n and_o the_o matter_n be_v another_o where_o aristotle_n give_v that_o name_n of_o cause_n to_o the_o matter_n also_o though_o other_o do_v appropriate_v it_o to_o the_o active_a power_n and_o the_o writer_n de_fw-fr placitis_fw-la philosophorum_fw-la express_v this_o as_o the_o general_n sense_n of_o the_o ancient_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v impossible_a that_o matter_n alone_o shall_v be_v the_o sole_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v suppose_v also_o a_o agent_n or_o efficient_a cause_n as_o silver_n alone_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o cup_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o artificer_n to_o work_v upon_o it_o and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v concern_v brass_n wood_n and_o other_o natural_a body_n now_o as_o they_o apprehend_v a_o necessity_n of_o these_o two_o principle_n so_o they_o conceive_v they_o to_o be_v such_o as_o can_v not_o be_v confound_v together_o into_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o substance_n they_o have_v such_o distinct_a idea_n and_o essential_a character_n from_o one_o another_o the_o stoic_n be_v the_o only_a person_n who_o offer_v violence_n to_o their_o own_o apprehension_n rude_o and_o unskilful_o attempt_v to_o make_v these_o two_o distinct_a thing_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n wherefore_o as_o the_o first_o of_o these_o viz._n matter_n or_o passive_a extend_v bulk_n be_v take_v by_o all_o for_o substance_n and_o common_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o body_n so_o the_o other_o which_o be_v far_o the_o more_o noble_a of_o the_o two_o be_v that_o which_o act_n upon_o the_o matter_n and_o have_v a_o command_a power_n over_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v substance_n too_o of_o a_o different_a kind_n from_o matter_n or_o body_n and_o therefore_o immaterial_a or_o incorporeal_a substance_n neither_o do_v they_o find_v any_o other_o entity_n to_o be_v conceivable_a beside_o these_o two_o passive_a bulk_n or_o extension_n which_o be_v corporeal_a substance_n and_o internal_a self-activity_n or_o life_n which_o be_v the_o essential_a character_n of_o substance_n incorporeal_a to_o which_o latter_a belong_v not_o only_a cogitation_n but_o also_o the_o power_n of_o move_a body_n moreover_o when_o they_o further_o consider_v the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o material_a or_o corporeal_a principle_n they_o be_v not_o able_a clear_o to_o conceive_v any_o thing_n else_o in_o it_o beside_o magnitude_n figure_n site_n and_o motion_n or_o rest_n which_o be_v all_o several_a modes_n of_o extend_v bulk_n conclude_v therefore_o according_a to_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v really_n nothing_o else_o exist_v in_o body_n without_o beside_o the_o various_a complexion_n and_o conjugation_n of_o those_o simple_a element_n that_o be_v nothing_o but_o mechanism_n whence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v in_o body_n be_v indeed_o nothing_o but_o our_o modes_n of_o sensation_n or_o the_o fancy_n and_o passion_n in_o we_o beget_v from_o they_o mistake_v for_o thing_n real_o exist_v without_o we_o and_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o obvious_a that_o some_o of_o those_o philosopher_n who_o have_v take_v little_a notice_n of_o the_o atomical_a physiology_n have_v notwithstanding_o a_o suspicion_n of_o it_o as_o for_o example_n plotinus_n who_o write_v of_o the_o criterion_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o power_n of_o reason_n have_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o the_o thing_n of_o sense_n seem_v to_o have_v so_o clear_a a_o certainty_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v doubt_v concern_v they_o whether_o the_o quality_n of_o they_o
have_v any_o real_a existence_n at_o all_o in_o the_o thing_n without_o we_o and_o not_o rather_o a_o seem_v existence_n only_o in_o our_o own_o passion_n and_o there_o be_v need_n of_o mind_n or_o understanding_n to_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n and_o to_o determine_v the_o controversy_n which_o sense_n alone_o can_v decide_v but_o the_o ancient_a physiologist_n conclude_v without_o any_o hesitancy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o nature_n of_o honey_n in_o itself_o be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n with_o my_o be_v sweeten_v nor_o of_o wormwood_n with_o that_o sense_n of_o bitterness_n which_o i_o have_v from_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o that_o the_o passion_n of_o sense_n differ_v from_o the_o absolute_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o without_o the_o sense_n not_o comprehend_v the_o object_n themselves_o but_o only_o their_o own_o passion_n from_o they_o i_o say_v therefore_o that_o the_o ancient_n conclude_v the_o absolute_a nature_n of_o corporeal_a thing_n in_o themselves_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o certain_a disposition_n of_o part_n in_o respect_n of_o magnitude_n figure_n site_n and_o motion_n which_o in_o taste_n cause_v we_o to_o be_v different_o affect_v with_o those_o sense_n of_o sweetness_n and_o bitterness_n and_o in_o sight_n with_o those_o fancy_n of_o colour_n and_o according_o in_o the_o other_o sense_n with_o other_o fancy_n and_o that_o the_o corporeal_a world_n be_v to_o be_v explain_v by_o these_o two_o thing_n whereof_o one_o be_v absolute_a in_o the_o body_n without_o we_o the_o various_a mechanism_n of_o they_o the_o other_o relative_n only_o to_o we_o the_o different_a fancy_n in_o we_o cause_v by_o the_o respective_a difference_n of_o they_o in_o themselves_o which_o fancy_n or_o fantastic_a idea_n be_v no_o modes_n of_o the_o body_n without_o we_o but_o of_o that_o only_a in_o ourselves_o which_o be_v cogitative_a or_o self-active_a that_o be_v incorporeal_a for_o the_o sensible_a idea_n of_o hot_a and_o cold_a red_a and_o green_a &c._n &c._n can_v be_v clear_o conceive_v by_o we_o as_o modes_n of_o the_o body_n without_o we_o but_o they_o may_v be_v easy_o apprehend_v as_o modes_n of_o cogitation_n that_o be_v of_o sensation_n or_o sympathetical_a perception_n in_o we_o the_o result_n of_o all_o which_o be_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v either_o in_o ourselves_o or_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v to_o be_v reduce_v to_o one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o two_o principle_n passive_a matter_n and_o extend_v bulk_n or_o self-active_a power_n and_o virtue_n corporeal_a or_o incorporeal_a substance_n mechanism_n or_o life_n or_o else_o to_o a_o complication_n of_o they_o both_o together_o xxviii_o from_o this_o general_n account_v which_o we_o have_v now_o give_v of_o the_o origin_n of_o the_o atomical_a physiology_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n spring_v up_o together_o with_o it_o but_o this_o will_v be_v further_o manifest_v from_o that_o which_o follow_v for_o we_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v how_o this_o philosophy_n do_v in_o especial_a manner_n owe_v its_o original_a to_o the_o improvement_n of_o one_o particular_a principle_n of_o reason_n over_o and_o beside_o all_o the_o rest_n namely_o that_o famous_a axiom_n so_o much_o talk_v of_o among_o the_o ancient_n de_fw-fr nihilo_fw-la nihil_fw-la in_fw-la nihilum_fw-la nil_fw-la posse_fw-la reverti_fw-la that_o nothing_o can_v come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o for_o though_o democritus_n epicurus_n and_o lucretius_n abuse_v this_o theorem_fw-la endeavour_v to_o carry_v it_o further_o than_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o first_o atomist_n to_o the_o disprove_v of_o a_o divine_a creation_n of_o any_o thing_n out_o of_o nothing_o by_o it_o nullam_fw-la rem_fw-la à_fw-la nihilo_fw-la gigni_fw-la divinitùs_fw-la unquam_fw-la and_o consequent_o of_o a_o deity_n yet_o as_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v at_o first_o confine_v and_o restrain_v that_o nothing_o of_o itself_o can_v come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o or_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n without_o a_o extraordinary_a divine_a power_n nothing_o can_v be_v raise_v from_o nothing_o nor_o reduce_v to_o nothing_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o undoubted_a rule_n of_o reason_n in_o itself_o but_o it_o be_v also_o the_o principal_a original_a of_o that_o atomical_a physiology_n which_o discard_n form_n and_o quality_n acknowledge_v real_o nothing_o else_o in_o body_n beside_o mechanism_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a or_o to_o no_o purpose_n that_o laertius_n in_o the_o life_n of_o democritus_n take_v notice_n of_o this_o as_o one_o of_o his_o dogmata_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o nothing_o be_v make_v or_o generate_v out_o of_o nothing_o nor_o corrupt_v into_o nothing_o this_o be_v a_o fundamental_a principle_n not_o only_o of_o his_o atheism_n but_o also_o of_o that_o very_a atomical_a physiology_n itself_o which_o he_o pursue_v and_o epicurus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o herodotus_n plain_o fetch_v the_o beginning_n of_o all_o his_o philosophy_n from_o hence_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o fetch_v the_o beginning_n of_o our_o philosophy_n say_v he_o from_o hence_o that_o nothing_o be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o or_o destroy_v to_o nothing_o for_o if_o thing_n be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o than_o every_o thing_n may_v be_v make_v out_o of_o every_o thing_n neither_o will_v there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o seed_n and_o if_o whatsoever_o be_v corrupt_v be_v destroy_v to_o nothing_o than_o all_o thing_n will_v at_o length_n be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o lucretius_n in_o like_a manner_n begin_v here_o insist_o more_o large_o upon_o those_o ground_n of_o reason_n hint_v by_o epicurus_n and_o first_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o he_o prove_v thus_o nam_fw-la si_fw-la de_fw-la nihilo_fw-la fierent_fw-la ex_fw-la omnibus_fw-la rebus_fw-la omne_fw-la genus_fw-la nasci_fw-la posset_n nil_fw-la semine_fw-la egeret_fw-la e_z mare_fw-la primùm_fw-la homines_fw-la &_o terra_fw-la posset_n oriri_fw-la squamigerum_fw-la genus_fw-la etc._n etc._n nec_fw-la fructus_fw-la iidem_fw-la arboribus_fw-la constare_fw-la solerent_fw-la sed_fw-la mutarentur_fw-la ferre_n omnes_fw-la omne_fw-la possent_fw-la praeterea_fw-la cur_n vere_n rosam_fw-la frumenta_fw-la calore_fw-la vite_n autumno_fw-la fundi_fw-la suadente_fw-la videmus_fw-la etc._n etc._n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la de_fw-la nihilo_fw-la fierent_fw-la subitò_fw-la exorerentur_fw-la incerto_fw-la spatio_fw-la atque_fw-la alienis_fw-la partibus_fw-la anni_fw-la in_o like_a manner_n he_o argue_v to_o prove_v that_o nothing_o be_v corrupt_v into_o nothing_o huc_fw-la accedit_fw-la utì_n quicque_n in_o sva_fw-la corpora_fw-la rursum_fw-la dissolvat_fw-la natura_fw-la neque_fw-la ad_fw-la nihilum_fw-la interimat_fw-la res_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la mortal_a à_fw-la cunctis_fw-la partibus_fw-la esset_fw-la exit_fw-la oculis_fw-la res_fw-la quaeque_fw-la repentè_fw-fr erepta_fw-la periret_fw-la praeterea_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la vetustate_fw-la amovet_fw-la aetas_fw-la si_fw-la penitus_fw-la perimit_fw-la consumens_fw-la materiam_fw-la omnem_fw-la vnde_fw-la animale_a genus_fw-la generatim_fw-la in_o lumina_fw-la vitæ_fw-la redducit_fw-la venus_n aut_fw-la redductum_fw-la daedala_n tellus_fw-la vnde_fw-la alit_fw-la atque_fw-la auget_fw-la generatim_fw-la pabula_fw-la praebens_fw-la etc._n etc._n haud_fw-la igitur_fw-la penitus_fw-la pereunt_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la videntur_fw-la quando_fw-la aliud_fw-la ex_fw-la alio_fw-la reficit_fw-la natura_fw-la nec_fw-la ullam_fw-la rem_fw-la gigni_fw-la patitur_fw-la nisi_fw-la morte_fw-la adjutam_fw-la alienâ_fw-la in_o which_o passage_n though_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o lucretius_n do_v not_o immediate_o drive_v at_o atheism_n and_o nothing_o else_o but_o primary_o at_o the_o establish_n of_o a_o peculiar_a kind_n of_o atomical_a physiology_n upon_o which_o indeed_o these_o democritick_n afterward_o endeavour_v to_o graft_v atheism_n yet_o to_o take_v away_o that_o suspicion_n we_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v that_o general_o the_o other_o ancient_a physiologer_n also_o who_o be_v theist_n do_v likewise_o build_v the_o structure_n of_o their_o philosophy_n upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n that_o nothing_o can_v come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o as_o for_o example_n parmenides_n melissus_n zeno_n xenophanes_n anaxagoras_n and_o empedocles_n of_o parmenides_n and_o melissus_n aristotle_n thus_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o say_v that_o no_o real_a entity_n be_v either_o generate_v or_o corrupt_v that_o be_v make_v anew_o out_o of_o nothing_o or_o destroy_v to_o nothing_o and_o simplicius_n tell_v we_o that_o parmenides_n give_v a_o notable_a reason_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o assertion_n that_o nothing_o in_o nature_n can_v be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o cause_n why_o it_o shall_v be_v then_o make_v and_o neither_o soon_o nor_o late_a again_o aristotle_n testify_v of_o xenophanes_n and_o zeno_n that_o they_o make_v this_o a_o main_a principle_n of_o their_o philosophy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
figure_n site_n and_o motion_n and_o partly_o something_o that_o be_v fantastical_a in_o the_o sentient_a that_o the_o atomical_a physiology_n do_v emerge_n after_o this_o manner_n from_o that_o principle_n of_o reason_n that_o nothing_o come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o may_v be_v further_o convince_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o aristotle_n write_v thus_o concern_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ancient_a physiologer_n conclude_v that_o because_o contrary_n be_v make_v out_o of_o one_o another_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v before_o one_o way_n or_o other_o inexistent_a argue_v in_o this_o manner_n that_o if_o whatsoever_o be_v make_v must_v needs_o be_v make_v out_o of_o something_o or_o out_o of_o nothing_o and_o this_o latter_a that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a according_a to_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a physiologer_n than_o it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o all_o corporeal_a thing_n be_v make_v or_o generate_v out_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v real_o before_o and_o inexistent_a though_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o smallness_n of_o their_o bulk_n they_o be_v insensible_a to_o we_o where_o aristotle_n plain_o intimate_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n whosoever_o insist_v upon_o this_o principle_n that_o nothing_o come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o be_v one_o way_n or_o other_o atomical_a and_o do_v resolve_v all_o corporeal_a thing_n into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d certain_a moleculae_fw-la or_o corpuscula_fw-la which_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o smallness_n be_v insensible_a to_o we_o that_o be_v into_o atom_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o these_o atomist_n forasmuch_o as_o anaxagoras_n be_v such_o a_o atomist_n as_o do_v notwithstanding_o hold_v form_n and_o quality_n real_o distinct_a from_o the_o mechanical_a modification_n of_o body_n for_o he_o not_o be_v able_a as_o it_o seem_v well_o to_o understand_v that_o other_o atomical_a physiology_n of_o the_o ancient_n that_o explode_v quality_n salve_v all_o corporeal_a phaenomena_n by_o mechanism_n and_o fancy_n and_o yet_o acknowledge_v that_o that_o principle_n of_o they_o which_o they_o go_v upon_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a that_o nothing_o can_v of_o itself_o come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o frame_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o atomology_n of_o his_o own_o in_o suppose_v the_o whole_a corporeal_a world_n or_o mass_n of_o matter_n to_o consist_v of_o similar_v atom_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v original_o endue_v with_o all_o those_o different_a form_n and_o quality_n that_o be_v vulgar_o conceive_v to_o be_v in_o body_n some_o bony_n some_o fleshy_a some_o fiery_a some_o watery_a some_o white_a some_o black_a some_o bitter_a some_o sweet_a and_o the_o like_a so_o that_o all_o body_n whatsoever_o have_v some_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o these_o atom_n which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n infinite_a specifical_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o in_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n that_o all_o thing_n be_v in_o every_o thing_n mingle_v together_o because_o they_o see_v that_o every_o thing_n be_v make_v of_o every_o thing_n but_o that_o thing_n seem_v to_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o and_o be_v denominate_v to_o be_v this_o or_o that_o from_o those_o atom_n which_o be_v most_o predominant_a in_o the_o mixture_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o multiplicity_n whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o all_o the_o generation_n corruption_n and_o alteration_n of_o body_n be_v make_v by_o nothing_o but_o the_o concretion_n and_o secretion_n of_o inexistent_n and_o preexistent_a atom_n of_o different_a form_n and_o quality_n without_o the_o production_n of_o any_o new_a form_n and_o quality_n out_o of_o nothing_o or_o the_o reduction_n of_o any_o into_o nothing_o this_o very_a account_n aristotle_n give_v of_o the_o anaxagorean_n hypothesis_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d anaxagoras_n seem_v therefore_o to_o make_v infinite_a atom_n endue_v with_o several_a form_n and_o quality_n to_o be_v the_o element_n of_o body_n because_o he_o suppose_v that_o common_a opinion_n of_o physiologer_n to_o be_v true_a that_o nothing_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o but_o all_o the_o other_o ancient_a physiologer_n that_o be_v before_o anaxagoras_n and_o likewise_o those_o after_o he_o who_o insist_v upon_o the_o same_o principle_n of_o nothing_o come_v from_o nothing_o do_v not_o anaxagorize_v as_o empedocles_n democritus_n and_o protagoras_n must_v needs_o make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dissimilar_v moleculae_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d atom_n unformed_a and_o unqualified_a otherwise_o than_o by_o magnitude_n figure_n and_o motion_n to_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o body_n and_o cashier_v form_n and_o quality_n as_o real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o matter_n resolve_v all_o corporeal_a phaenomena_n into_o mechanism_n and_o fancy_n because_o if_o no_o real_a entity_n can_v come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o than_o one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o either_o these_o corporeal_a form_n and_o quality_n be_v real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o matter_n shall_v exist_v before_o generation_n and_o after_o corruption_n in_o certain_a insensible_a atom_n original_o such_o according_a to_o the_o anaxagorean_n doctrine_n or_o else_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o matter_n but_o only_o the_o different_a modification_n and_o mechanism_n of_o it_o together_o with_o different_a fancy_n and_o thus_o we_o have_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o genuine_a atomical_a physiology_n do_v spring_v original_o from_o this_o principle_n of_o reason_n that_o no_o real_a entity_n do_v of_o itself_o come_v from_o nothing_o nor_o go_v to_o nothing_o xxix_o now_o we_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v how_o this_o very_a same_o principle_n of_o reason_n which_o induce_v the_o ancient_n to_o reject_v substantial_a form_n and_o quality_n of_o body_n and_o to_o physiologize_v atomical_o lead_v they_o also_o unavoidable_o to_o assert_v incorporeal_a substance_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o animal_n be_v such_o neither_o generate_v nor_o corrupt_v they_o have_v argue_v against_o substantial_a form_n and_o quality_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o this_o manner_n that_o since_o the_o form_n and_o quality_n of_o body_n be_v suppose_v by_o all_o to_o be_v generate_v and_o corrupt_v make_v anew_o out_o of_o nothing_o and_o destroy_v to_o nothing_o that_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o be_v real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o matter_n but_o only_o different_a modification_n of_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o figure_n site_n and_o motion_n cause_v different_a sensation_n in_o we_o and_o be_v all_o to_o be_v resolve_v into_o mechanism_n and_o fancy_n for_o as_o for_o that_o conceit_n of_o anaxagoras_n of_o prae_fw-la and_o post-existent_a atom_n endue_v with_o all_o those_o several_a form_n and_o quality_n of_o body_n ingenerable_o and_o incorruptible_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o adulteration_n of_o the_o genuine_a atomical_a philosophy_n and_o a_o mere_a dream_n of_o he_o in_o which_o very_o few_o follow_v he_o and_o now_o they_o argue_v contrariwise_o for_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o animal_n in_o this_o manner_n because_o they_o be_v plain_o real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o matter_n and_o its_o modification_n and_o man_n and_o brute_n be_v not_o mere_a machines_n neither_o can_v life_n and_o cogitation_n sense_n and_o consciousness_n reason_n and_o understanding_n appetite_n and_o will_n ever_o result_v from_o magnitude_n figure_n sites_n and_o motion_n that_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o corporeal_o generate_v and_o corrupt_v as_o the_o form_n and_o quality_n of_o body_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o real_a entity_n to_o be_v make_v or_o generate_v from_o nothing_o preexi_v now_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o soul_n and_o mind_n reason_n and_o understanding_n nor_o indeed_o of_o cogitation_n and_o life_n contain_v in_o the_o modification_n and_o mechanism_n of_o body_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v soul_n and_o mind_n to_o rise_v out_o of_o body_n whensoever_o a_o man_n be_v generate_v will_v be_v plain_o to_o make_v a_o real_a entity_n to_o come_v out_o of_o nothing_o which_o be_v impossible_a i_o say_v because_o the_o form_n and_o quality_n of_o body_n be_v generate_v and_o corrupt_v make_a and_o unmake_v in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n therefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v not_o real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o body_n and_o its_o various_a modification_n but_o because_o soul_n and_o mind_n be_v plain_o a_o real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o body_n its_o modification_n and_o mechanism_n that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n generate_v and_o corrupt_v make_a and_o unmake_v but_o such_o as_o have_v a_o be_v of_o its_o own_o a_o substantial_a thing_n by_o
be_v immortal_a and_o such_o as_o will_v subsist_v after_o death_n and_o the_o chief_a demonstration_n of_o the_o soul_n preexistence_n to_o the_o ancient_n before_o plato_n be_v this_o because_o it_o be_v a_o entity_n real_o distinct_a from_o body_n or_o matter_n and_o the_o modification_n of_o it_o and_o no_o real_a substantial_a entity_n can_v either_o spring_v of_o itself_o out_o of_o nothing_o or_o be_v make_v out_o of_o any_o other_o substance_n distinct_a from_o it_o because_o nothing_o can_v be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o nothing_o either_o inexisting_a or_o preexi_v all_o natural_a generation_n be_v but_o the_o various_a disposition_n and_o modification_n of_o what_o be_v before_o existent_a in_o the_o universe_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o soul_n and_o mind_n inexi_v and_o preexi_v in_o body_n before_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o life_n and_o cogitation_n in_o magnitude_n figure_n site_n and_o motion_n wherefore_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n make_v or_o generate_v as_o corporeal_a form_n and_o quality_n be_v but_o such_o as_o have_v a_o be_v in_o nature_n ingenerable_o and_o incorruptible_o the_o mechanism_n of_o humane_a body_n be_v a_o thing_n make_v and_o generate_v it_o be_v only_o a_o different_a modification_n of_o what_o be_v before_o existent_a and_o have_v no_o new_a entity_n in_o it_o distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o totum_fw-la or_o compositum_fw-la of_o a_o man_n or_o animal_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v generate_v and_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o union_n and_o disunion_n conjunction_n and_o separation_n of_o those_o two_o part_n the_o soul_n and_o body_n but_o the_o soul_n itself_o according_a to_o these_o principle_n be_v neither_o a_o thing_n generable_a nor_o corruptible_a but_o be_v as_o well_o before_o the_o generation_n and_o will_v be_v after_o the_o death_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n as_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o body_n which_o be_v suppose_v by_o all_o to_o have_v be_v from_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o no_o part_n of_o it_o to_o be_v annihilate_v or_o lose_v after_o death_n but_o only_o scatter_v and_o disperse_v in_o the_o universe_n thus_o the_o ancient_a atomist_n conclude_v that_o soul_n and_o life_n be_v substantial_a entity_n by_o themselves_o be_v all_o of_o they_o as_o old_a as_o any_o other_o substance_n in_o the_o universe_n and_o as_o the_o whole_a mass_n of_o matter_n and_o every_o small_a atom_n of_o it_o be_v that_o be_v they_o who_o maintain_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o world_n do_v consequent_o assert_v also_o aeternitatem_fw-la animorum_fw-la as_o cicero_n call_v it_o the_o eternity_n of_o soul_n and_o mind_n but_o they_o who_o conceive_v the_o world_n to_o have_v have_v a_o temporary_a beginning_n or_o creation_n hold_v the_o coevity_n of_o all_o soul_n with_o it_o and_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v induce_v to_o think_v that_o every_o atom_n of_o senseless_a matter_n and_o particle_n of_o dust_n have_v such_o a_o privilege_n and_o preeminency_n over_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o animal_n as_o to_o be_v seniour_n to_o they_o synesius_n though_o a_o christian_n yet_o have_v be_v educate_v in_o this_o philosophy_n can_v not_o be_v induce_v by_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o bishopric_n to_o stifle_v or_o dissemble_v this_o sentiment_n of_o his_o mind_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o shall_v never_o be_v persuade_v to_o think_v my_o soul_n to_o be_v young_a than_o my_o body_n but_o such_o it_o seem_v be_v the_o temper_n of_o those_o time_n that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o dispense_v withal_o as_o to_o this_o but_o also_o as_o to_o another_o heterodoxy_n of_o he_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n xxxii_o it_o be_v already_o plain_a also_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a atomist_n concern_v the_o immateriality_n and_o immortality_n the_o prae_fw-la and_o post-existence_n of_o soul_n be_v not_o confine_v by_o they_o to_o humane_a soul_n only_o but_o extend_v universal_o to_o all_o soul_n and_o life_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v hardly_o ever_o call_v into_o doubt_n or_o question_n by_o any_o before_o cartesius_n whether_o the_o soul_n of_o brute_n have_v any_o sense_n cogitation_n or_o consciousness_n in_o they_o or_o no._n now_o all_o life_n sense_n and_o cogitation_n be_v undoubted_o conclude_v by_o they_o to_o be_v a_o entity_n real_o distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o body_n and_o not_o the_o mere_a modification_n motion_n or_o mechanism_n of_o it_o life_n and_o mechanism_n be_v two_o distinct_a idea_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o can_v be_v confound_v together_o wherefore_o they_o resolve_v that_o all_o life_n and_o soul_n whatsoever_o which_o now_o be_v in_o the_o world_n ever_o be_v from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o it_o and_o ever_o will_v be_v that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o new_a one_o produce_v which_o be_v not_o already_o and_o have_v not_o always_o be_v nor_o any_o of_o those_o which_o now_o be_v destroy_v any_o more_o than_o the_o substance_n of_o any_o matter_n will_v be_v create_v or_o annihilate_v so_o that_o the_o whole_a system_n of_o the_o create_a universe_n consist_v of_o body_n and_o particular_a incorporeal_a substance_n or_o soul_n in_o the_o successive_a generation_n and_o corruption_n or_o death_n of_o man_n and_o other_o animal_n be_v according_a to_o they_o real_o nothing_o else_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n perpetual_o anagrammatize_v or_o but_o like_o many_o different_a syllable_n and_o word_n various_o and_o successive_o compose_v out_o of_o the_o same_o preexistent_a element_n or_o letter_n xxxiii_o we_o have_v now_o declare_v how_o the_o same_o principle_n of_o reason_n which_o make_v the_o ancient_a physiologer_n to_o become_v atomist_n must_v needs_o induce_v they_o also_o to_o be_v incorporealist_n how_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o persuade_v they_o that_o corporeal_a form_n be_v no_o real_a entity_n distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n but_o only_o the_o different_a modification_n and_o mechanism_n of_o it_o convince_v they_o likewise_o that_o all_o cogitative_a being_n all_o soul_n and_o life_n whatsoever_o be_v ingenerable_a and_o incorruptible_a and_o as_o well_o preexistent_a before_o the_o generation_n of_o particular_a animal_n as_o postexistent_a after_o their_o death_n and_o corruption_n nothing_o now_o remain_v but_o only_o to_o show_v more_o particular_o that_o it_o be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la thus_o that_o the_o same_o person_n do_v from_o this_o principle_n that_o nothing_o can_v come_v from_o nothing_o and_o go_v to_o nothing_o both_o atomize_v in_o their_o physiology_n take_v away_o all_o substantial_a form_n and_o quality_n and_o also_o theologize_v or_o incorporealize_v assert_v soul_n to_o be_v a_o substance_n real_o distinct_a from_o matter_n and_o immortal_a as_o also_o to_o preexist_v and_o this_o we_o shall_v do_v from_o empedocles_n and_o first_o from_o that_o passage_n of_o his_o cite_v before_o in_o part_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d al._n lect_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o i_o find_v latine_v thus_o ast_n aliud_fw-la dico_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la mortalibus_fw-la ortus_fw-la est_fw-la nihil_fw-la interitus_fw-la qui_fw-la rebus_fw-la morte_fw-la paratur_fw-la mistio_fw-la sed_fw-la solum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o conciliatio_fw-la rerum_fw-la mistilium_fw-la haec_fw-la dici_fw-la solita_fw-la est_fw-la mortalibus_fw-la ortus_fw-la the_o full_a sense_n whereof_o be_v plain_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o production_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o before_o no_o new_a substance_n make_v which_o do_v not_o real_o preexist_v and_o therefore_o that_o in_o the_o generation_n and_o corruption_n of_o inanimate_a body_n there_o be_v no_o form_n or_o quality_n real_o distinct_a from_o the_o substance_n produce_v and_o destroy_v but_o only_o a_o various_a composition_n and_o modification_n of_o matter_n but_o in_o the_o generation_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n and_o animal_n where_o the_o soul_n be_v substance_n real_o distinct_a from_o the_o matter_n that_o there_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o conjunction_n and_o separation_n of_o soul_n and_o particular_a body_n exist_v both_o before_o and_o after_o not_o the_o production_n of_o any_o new_a soul_n into_o be_v which_o be_v not_o before_o nor_o the_o absolute_a death_n and_o destruction_n of_o any_o into_o nothing_o which_o be_v further_o express_v in_o these_o follow_a verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o this_o sense_n that_o they_o be_v infant_n in_o understanding_n and_o shortsighted_a who_o think_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v make_v which_o be_v nothing_o before_o or_o any_o thing_n to_o die_v so_o as_o to_o be_v destroy_v to_o nothing_o upon_o which_o plutarch_n gloss_n after_o this_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d empedocles_n do_v not_o here_o destroy_v
interpreter_n it_o be_v resolve_v by_o many_o of_o they_o to_o be_v the_o divine_a intellect_n and_o common_o by_o other_o a_o foreign_a thing_n whence_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v leave_v doubtful_a whether_o he_o acknowledge_v any_o thing_n incorporeal_a and_o immortal_a at_o all_o in_o we_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o lay_v down_o this_o principle_n that_o nothing_o be_v incorporeal_a but_o what_o act_v independent_o upon_o the_o body_n he_o somewhere_o plain_o determine_v that_o there_o be_v no_o intellection_n without_o corporeal_a phantasm_n that_o which_o lead_v aristotle_n to_o all_o this_o positive_o to_o affirm_v the_o corporeity_n of_o sensitive_a soul_n and_o to_o stagger_v so_o much_o concern_v the_o incorporeity_n of_o the_o rational_a seem_v to_o have_v be_v his_o doctrine_n of_o form_n and_o quality_n whereby_o corporeal_a and_o incorporeal_a substance_n be_v confound_v together_o so_o that_o the_o limit_n of_o each_o can_v not_o be_v discern_v by_o he_o wherefore_o we_o can_v applaud_v aristotle_n for_o this_o but_o that_o which_o we_o commend_v he_o for_o be_v chief_o these_o four_o thing_n first_o for_o make_v a_o perfect_a incorporeal_a intellect_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o and_o second_o for_o resolve_v that_o nature_n as_o a_o instrument_n of_o this_o intellect_n do_v not_o mere_o act_v according_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o material_a motion_n but_o for_o end_n and_o purpose_n though_o unknown_a to_o itself_o three_o for_o maintain_v the_o naturality_n of_o morality_n and_o last_o for_o assert_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d autexousie_n or_o liberty_n from_o necessity_n chap._n ii_o in_o this_o chapter_n be_v contain_v all_o the_o pretend_a ground_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o atheistick_a hypothesis_n 1._o that_o the_o democritick_n philosophy_n which_o be_v make_v up_o of_o these_o two_o principle_n corporealism_n and_o atomism_n complicate_v together_o be_v essential_o atheistical_a 2._o though_o epicurus_n who_o be_v a_o atomical-corporealist_a pretend_v to_o assert_v a_o democracy_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o be_v for_o all_o that_o a_o absolute_a atheist_n and_o that_o atheist_n common_o equivocate_v and_o disguise_n themselves_o 3._o that_o the_o democritical_a philosophy_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o system_fw-la of_o atheology_n or_o atheism_n swagger_v under_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o philosophy_n and_o though_o there_o be_v another_o form_n of_o atheism_n which_o we_o call_v stratonical_a yet_o the_o democritick_n atheism_n be_v only_o considerable_a all_o who_o dark_a mystery_n will_v be_v here_o reveal_v 4._o that_o we_o be_v to_o treat_v concern_v the_o deity_n and_o to_o produce_v all_o that_o profane_a and_o unhallowed_a stuff_n of_o atheist_n in_o order_n to_o a_o confutation_n the_o divine_a assistance_n and_o direction_n ought_v to_o be_v implore_v 5._o that_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n here_o to_o be_v perform_v first_o to_o show_v what_o be_v the_o atheist_n pretend_a ground_n of_o reason_n against_o the_o deity_n and_o second_o how_o they_o endeavour_v either_o to_o salve_n or_o confute_v the_o contrary_a phaenomena_n the_o first_o of_o those_o ground_n that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v a_o idea_n or_o conception_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o incomprehensible_a nothing_o 6._o the_o second_o atheistick_a argument_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o creation_n out_o of_o nothing_o nor_o no_o omnipotence_n because_o nothing_o can_v come_v from_o nothing_o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o substantial_o be_v be_v from_o eternity_n selfexistent_a and_o uncreated_a by_o any_o deity_n 7._o the_o three_o pretend_v reason_n against_o a_o deity_n that_o the_o strict_a notion_n of_o a_o god_n imply_v he_o to_o be_v incorporeal_a there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o incorporeal_a deity_n because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o substance_n but_o body_n 8._o the_o atheist_n pretence_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n spring_v from_o a_o ridiculous_a mistake_v of_o abstract_a name_n and_o notion_n for_o reality_n they_o impudent_o make_v the_o deity_n to_o be_v but_o the_o chief_a of_o spectres_n and_o a_o oberon_n or_o prince_n of_o fairy_n and_o fancy_n their_o four_o argument_n against_o a_o deity_n that_o to_o suppose_v a_o incorporeal_a mind_n to_o be_v the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n be_v but_o to_o make_v a_o mere_a accident_n and_o abstract_a notion_n to_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o 9_o their_o five_o argument_n a_o confutation_n of_o a_o corporeal_a deity_n from_o the_o principle_n of_o corporealism_n itself_o that_o matter_n be_v the_o only_a substance_n and_o all_o other_o difference_n of_o thing_n nothing_o but_o accident_n generable_a and_o corruptible_a no_o live_v understanding_n be_v can_v be_v essential_o incorruptible_a the_o stoical_a god_n incorruptible_a only_o by_o accident_n 19_o their_o six_o ratiocination_n from_o a_o complication_n of_o atomicism_n that_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o in_o the_o universe_n be_v atom_n or_o corpuscula_fw-la devoid_a of_o all_o quality_n and_o consequent_o of_o sense_n and_o understanding_n which_o spring_v up_o afterward_o from_o a_o certain_a composition_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o mind_n or_o deity_n be_v not_o the_o first_o original_a of_o all_o 11._o in_o the_o seven_o place_n they_o disprove_v the_o world_n animation_n or_o its_o be_v govern_v by_o a_o live_a understanding_n animalish_n nature_n preside_v over_o the_o whole_a because_o sense_n and_o understanding_n be_v a_o peculiar_a appendix_n to_o flesh_n blood_n and_o brain_n and_o reason_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o humane_a form_n 12._o the_o eight_o atheistick_a ground_n that_o god_n be_v take_v by_o all_o for_o a_o most_o happy_a eternal_a and_o immortal_a animal_n or_o live_v be_v there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n because_o all_o live_a being_n be_v concretion_n of_o atom_n that_o be_v at_o first_o generate_v and_o be_v liable_a to_o death_n and_o corruption_n by_o the_o dissolution_n of_o their_o compage_n and_o that_o life_n be_v no_o simple_a primitive_a nature_n but_o a_o accidental_a modification_n of_o compound_v body_n which_o upon_o the_o disunion_n of_o their_o part_n vanish_v into_o nothing_o 13._o the_o nine_o pretend_v atheistick_a demonstration_n that_o by_o god_n be_v mean_v a_o first_o cause_n or_o mover_n which_o be_v not_o before_o move_v by_o any_o thing_n else_o without_o it_o but_o nothing_o can_v move_v itself_o and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o vnmoved_a mover_n nor_o any_o first_o in_o the_o order_n of_o cause_n that_o be_v a_o god_n 14._o their_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o principle_n that_o nothing_o can_v move_v itself_o with_o a_o atheistick_a corollary_n from_o thence_o that_o no_o think_v be_v can_v be_v a_o first_o cause_n no_o cogitation_n arise_v of_o itself_o without_o a_o cause_n which_o may_v be_v reckon_v a_o ten_o argument_n 15._o another_o mystery_n of_o atheism_n that_o all_o knowledge_n and_o mental_a conception_n be_v the_o information_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o know_v exist_v without_o the_o knower_n and_o a_o passion_n from_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o world_n must_v needs_o be_v before_o any_o knowledge_n or_o conception_n of_o it_o and_o no_o knowledge_n or_o conception_n before_o the_o world_n as_o its_o cause_n 16._o the_o twelve_o argumentation_n that_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v make_v by_o a_o god_n because_o they_o be_v so_o faulty_a and_o ill_o make_v that_o they_o be_v not_o contrive_v for_o the_o good_a of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o deluge_n of_o evil_n that_o overflow_v all_o shows_z that_o they_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o any_o deity_n 17._o the_o thirteen_o instance_n of_o the_o atheist_n against_o a_o deity_n from_o the_o defect_n of_o providence_n that_o in_o humane_a affair_n all_o be_v tohu_n and_o bohu_n chaos_n and_o confusion_n 18._o the_o fourteen_o atheistick_a ground_n that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o any_o one_o be_v to_o animadvert_v and_o order_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o distant_a place_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n at_o once_o but_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o such_o infinite_a negotiosity_n will_v be_v absolute_o inconsistent_a with_o happiness_n 19_o several_a bold_a but_o slight_a query_n of_o atheist_n why_o the_o world_n be_v not_o make_v soon_o and_o what_o god_n do_v before_o why_o it_o be_v make_v at_o all_o since_o it_o be_v so_o long_o unmake_v and_o how_o the_o architect_n of_o the_o world_n can_v rear_v up_o so_o huge_a a_o fabric_n 20._o the_o atheist_n pretence_n that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a interest_n of_o mankind_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o noble_a and_o heroical_a exploit_n of_o the_o democritick_n to_o chase_v away_o that_o affrightful_a spectre_n out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o free_a man_n from_o the_o continual_a fear_n of_o a_o deity_n and_o punishment_n after_o death_n embitter_v all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o life_n 21._o another_o pretence_n of_o
a_o twelve_o argumentation_n of_o the_o democritick_n and_o epicurean_a atheist_n against_o a_o deity_n be_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v make_v by_o a_o deity_n that_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v a_o be_v every_o way_n perfect_a because_o they_o be_v so_o faulty_a and_o so_o ill_o make_v the_o argument_n be_v thus_o propound_v by_o lucretius_n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la jam_fw-la rerum_fw-la ignorem_fw-la primordia_fw-la quae_fw-la sint_fw-la hoc_fw-la tamen_fw-la ex_fw-la ipsis_fw-la coeli_fw-la rationibus_fw-la ausim_fw-la confirmare_fw-la aliísque_fw-la ex_fw-la rebus_fw-la reddere_fw-la multis_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la nobis_fw-la divinitùs_fw-la esse_fw-la paratam_fw-la naturam_fw-la rerum_fw-la tantâ_fw-la stat_fw-la praedita_fw-la culpâ_fw-la this_o argument_n à_fw-la coeli_fw-la rationibus_fw-la from_o astronomy_n or_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v this_o that_o the_o mundane_a sphere_n be_v so_o frame_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o aequator_fw-la and_o ecliptic_a as_o render_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n uninhabitable_a to_o man_n and_o most_o other_o animal_n partly_o by_o reason_n of_o that_o excess_n of_o heat_n in_o the_o torrid_a zone_n contain_v all_o between_o the_o tropic_n and_o partly_o from_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a in_o both_o the_o frigid_a zone_n towards_o either_o pole_n again_o whereas_o the_o stoical_a theist_n contemporary_a with_o epicurus_n conclude_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v make_v by_o a_o deity_n only_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o man_n horum_fw-la omne_fw-la causâ_fw-la constituisse_fw-la deum_fw-la fingunt_fw-la it_o be_v urge_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o habitable_a earth_n be_v take_v up_o by_o sea_n lake_n and_o rock_n barren_a heath_n and_o sand_n and_o thereby_o make_v useless_a for_o mankind_n and_o that_o the_o remainder_n of_o it_o yield_v no_o fruit_n to_o they_o unless_o expugn_v by_o obstinate_a labour_n after_o all_o which_o man_n be_v often_o disappoint_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o those_o labour_n by_o unseasonable_a wether_n storm_n and_o tempest_n again_o that_o nature_n have_v not_o only_o produce_v many_o noxious_a and_o poisonous_a herb_n but_o also_o destructive_a and_o devour_a animal_n who_o strength_n surpass_v that_o of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o mankind_n be_v so_o much_o inferior_a to_o that_o of_o brute_n that_o nature_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v but_o a_o stepmother_n to_o the_o former_a whilst_o she_o have_v be_v a_o indulgent_a mother_n to_o the_o latter_a and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o manner_n of_o man_n come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v thus_o aggravate_v by_o the_o poet_n tum_o porro_fw-la pver_fw-la ut_fw-la saevis_fw-la projectus_fw-la ab_fw-la undis_fw-la navita_fw-la nudus_fw-la humi_fw-la iaceo_fw-la infans_fw-la indigus_fw-la omni_fw-la vitaï_n auxilio_fw-la cùm_fw-la primùm_fw-la in_o luminis_fw-la oras_fw-la nixibus_fw-la ex_fw-la alvo_fw-la matris_fw-la natura_fw-la profudit_fw-la vagitúque_fw-la locum_fw-la lugubri_fw-la complete_a ut_fw-la aequum_fw-la '_o st_o quoi_fw-fr tantum_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la restet_fw-la transire_fw-la malorum_fw-la but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o comparative_a advantage_n of_o brute_n and_o their_o privilege_n which_o they_o have_v above_o man_n be_v describe_v after_o this_o manner_n at_o variae_fw-la crescunt_fw-la pecudes_fw-la armenta_fw-la feraequ●_n nec_fw-la crepitacula_fw-la eye_n opu_fw-la '_o sunt_fw-la nec_fw-la quoiquam_fw-la adhibenda_fw-la '_o st_o almae_fw-la nutricis_fw-la blanda_n atque_fw-la infracta_fw-la loquela_fw-la nec_fw-la varias_fw-la quaerunt_fw-la vestes_fw-la pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la coeli_fw-la denique_fw-la non_fw-la armis_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la moenibus_fw-la altis_fw-la queis_fw-la sva_fw-la tutentur_fw-la quando_fw-la omnibus_fw-la omne_fw-la largè_fw-fr tellus_fw-la ipsa_fw-la parit_fw-la naturáque_fw-la daedala_n rerum_fw-la and_o last_o the_o topick_n of_o evil_n in_o general_n be_v insist_v upon_o by_o they_o not_o those_o which_o be_v be_v call_v culpae_fw-la evil_n of_o fault_n for_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o the_o democritick_n atheist_n utter_o explode_v in_o the_o genuine_a sense_n of_o it_o but_o the_o evil_n of_o pain_n and_o trouble_v which_o they_o dispute_v concern_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o suppose_a deity_n and_o maker_n of_o the_o world_n be_v either_o willing_a to_o abolish_v all_o evil_n but_o not_o able_a or_o he_o be_v able_a but_o not_o will_v or_o three_o he_o be_v neither_o willing_a nor_o able_a or_o else_o last_o he_o be_v both_o able_a and_o willing_a this_o latter_a be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o answer_v full_o to_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o god_n now_o that_o the_o suppose_a creator_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o thus_o both_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o abolish_v all_o evil_n be_v plain_a because_o then_o there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o evil_n at_o all_o left_a wherefore_o since_o there_o be_v such_o a_o deluge_n of_o evil_n overflow_a all_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o either_o he_o be_v willing_a and_o not_o able_a to_o remove_v they_o and_o then_o he_o be_v impotent_a or_o else_o he_o be_v able_a and_o not_o will_v and_o then_o he_o be_v envious_a or_o last_o he_o be_v neither_o able_a nor_o willing_a and_o then_o he_o be_v both_o impotent_a and_o envious_a xvii_o in_o the_o twelve_o place_n the_o atheist_n further_o dispute_v in_o this_o manner_n if_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o any_o deity_n than_o it_o will_v be_v govern_v by_o a_o providence_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o providence_n it_o must_v appear_v in_o humane_a affair_n but_o here_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o all_o be_v tohu_n and_o bohu_n chaos_n and_o confusion_n thing_n happen_v alike_o to_o all_o to_o the_o wise_a and_o foolish_a religious_a and_o impious_a virtuous_a and_o vicious_a for_o these_o name_n the_o atheist_n can_v choose_v but_o make_v use_n of_o though_o by_o take_v away_o natural_a morality_n they_o real_o destroy_v the_o thing_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v conclude_v that_o all_o thing_n float_v up_o and_o down_o as_o they_o be_v agitate_a and_o drive_v by_o the_o tumble_a billow_n of_o careless_a fortune_n and_o chance_n the_o impiety_n of_o dionysius_n his_o scoff_a abuse_n of_o religion_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v then_o sacred_a or_o worship_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o god_n be_v most_o notorious_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o he_o fare_v never_o a_o jot_n the_o worse_a for_o it_o hunc_fw-la nec_fw-la olympius_n jupiter_n fulmine_fw-la percussit_fw-la nec_fw-la aesculapius_n misero_fw-la diuturnóque_fw-la morbo_fw-la tabescentem_fw-la interemit_fw-la verùm_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la lectulo_fw-la mortuus_fw-la in_fw-la tympanidis_fw-la rogum_fw-la illatus_fw-la est_fw-la eámque_fw-la potestatem_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la per_fw-la scelus_fw-la nactus_fw-la erat_fw-la quasi_fw-la justam_fw-la &_o legitimam_fw-la haereditatis_fw-la loco_fw-la tradidit_fw-la neither_o do_v jupiter_n olympius_n strike_v he_o with_o a_o thunderbolt_n nor_o aesculapius_n inflict_v any_o languish_a disease_n upon_o he_o but_o he_o die_v in_o his_o bed_n and_o be_v honourable_o inter_v and_o that_o power_n which_o he_o have_v wicked_o acquire_v he_o transmit_v as_o a_o just_a and_o lawful_a inheritance_n to_o his_o posterity_n and_o diogenes_n the_o cynic_n though_o much_o a_o theist_n can_v not_o but_o acknowledge_v that_o harpalus_n a_o fa●ous_a robber_n or_o pirate_n in_o those_o time_n who_o commit_v many_o villainous_a action_n notwithstanding_o live_v prosperous_o do_v thereby_o testimonium_fw-la dicere_fw-la contra_fw-la deos_fw-la bear_v testimony_n against_o the_o go_n though_o it_o have_v be_v object_v by_o the_o theist_n and_o think_v to_o be_v a_o strong_a argument_n for_o providence_n that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o table_n hang_v up_o in_o temple_n the_o monument_n of_o such_o as_o have_v pray_v to_o the_o god_n in_o storm_n and_o tempest_n have_v escape_v shipwreck_n yet_o as_o diagoras_n observe_v nusquam_fw-la picti_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la naufragium_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la there_o be_v no_o table_n extant_a of_o those_o of_o they_o who_o be_v shipwrack_v wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o consider_v by_o these_o theist_n how_o many_o of_o they_o that_o pray_v as_o well_o to_o the_o god_n do_v notwithstanding_o suffer_v shipwreck_n as_o also_o how_o many_o of_o those_o which_o never_o make_v any_o devotional_a address_n at_o all_o to_o any_o deity_n escape_v equal_a danger_n of_o storm_n and_o tempest_n moreover_o it_o be_v consentaneous_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o god_n to_o think_v that_o thunder_n rattle_v in_o the_o cloud_n with_o thunderbolt_n shall_v be_v the_o immediate_a signification_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o displeasure_n whereas_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o these_o be_v fling_v at_o random_n and_o that_o the_o fury_n of_o they_o often_o light_v upon_o the_o innocent_a whilst_o the_o notorious_o guilty_a escape_v untouched_a and_o therefore_o we_o understand_v not_o how_o this_o can_v be_v answer_v by_o any_o theist_n cur_n quibus_fw-la incautum_fw-la scelus_fw-la aversabile_fw-la cumque_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la faciunt_fw-la icti_fw-la flammas_fw-la ut_fw-la fulguris_fw-la halent_fw-la pectore_fw-la perfixo_fw-la documen_fw-la mortalibus_fw-la acre_n et_fw-la
atheism_n beside_o those_o four_o already_o mention_v because_o all_o atheist_n be_v corporealist_n and_o yet_o all_o corporealist_n not_o atheist_n but_o only_o such_o as_o make_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v intellectual_a 31._o a_o distribution_n of_o atheism_n produce_v the_o former_a quaternio_fw-la and_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o 32._o that_o they_o be_v but_o bungler_n at_o atheism_n who_o talk_v of_o sensitive_a and_o rational_a matter_n and_o that_o the_o cant_v astrological_a atheist_n be_v not_o at_o all_o considerable_a because_o not_o understand_v themselves_o 33._o another_o distribution_n of_o atheism_n that_o they_o either_o derive_v the_o original_a of_o thing_n from_o a_o mere_o fortuitous_a principle_n the_o unguided_a motion_n of_o matter_n or_o else_o from_o a_o plastic_a and_o methodical_a but_o senseless_a nature_n what_o atheist_n deny_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o world_n and_o what_o assert_v it_o 34._o that_o of_o these_o four_o form_n of_o atheism_n the_o atomick_a or_o democritical_a and_o the_o hylozoick_a or_o stratonical_a be_v the_o chief_a and_o that_o these_o two_o be_v once_o confute_v all_o atheism_n will_v be_v confute_v 35._o these_o two_o form_n of_o atheism_n be_v contrary_a to_o one_o another_o how_o we_o ought_v in_o all_o reason_n to_o insist_v rather_o upon_o the_o atomick_a but_o that_o afterward_o we_o shall_v confute_v the_o hylozoick_a also_o and_o prove_v against_o all_o corporealist_n that_o no_o cogitation_n nor_o life_n belong_v to_o matter_n 36._o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o shall_v not_o neglect_v any_o form_n of_o atheism_n but_o confute_v they_o all_o together_o as_o agree_v in_o one_o principle_n as_o also_o show_v how_o the_o old_a atomick_a atheist_n do_v sufficient_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o hylozoist_n 37._o observe_v here_o that_o the_o hylozoist_n be_v not_o condemn_v mere_o for_o assert_v a_o plastic_a life_n distinct_a from_o the_o animal_n which_o with_o most_o other_o philosopher_n we_o judge_v high_o probable_a if_o take_v in_o a_o right_a sense_n but_o for_o gross_o misunderstand_v it_o and_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o matter_n 〈◊〉_d the_o plastic_a life_n of_o nature_n large_o explain_v 38._o that_o though_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o atheistick_a ground_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o method_n aught_o to_o have_v be_v reserve_v for_o the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n yet_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o violate_v those_o law_n crave_v the_o reader_n pardon_v for_o this_o preposterousness_n a_o considerable_a observation_n of_o plato_n that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o moral_a vitiosity_n which_o incline_v man_n to_o atheize_v but_o also_o a_o affectation_n of_o seem_v wise_a than_o the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n as_o likewise_o that_o the_o atheist_n make_v such_o pretence_n to_o wit_n it_o be_v a_o seasonable_a undertake_n to_o evince_n that_o they_o fumble_v in_o all_o their_o ratiocination_n that_o we_o hope_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o atheist_n be_v no_o conjurer_n and_o that_o all_o form_n of_o atheism_n be_v nonsense_n and_o impossibility_n i._o we_o have_v now_o represent_v the_o grand_a mystery_n of_o atheism_n which_o may_v be_v also_o call_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n though_o indeed_o some_o of_o they_o be_v but_o brief_o hint_v here_o they_o be_v again_o more_o full_o to_o be_v insist_v on_o afterward_o where_o we_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o atheist_n endeavour_n to_o salve_v the_o phaenomenon_n of_o cogitation_n we_o have_v represent_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o atheism_n in_o general_n as_o also_o of_o that_o most_o notorious_a form_n of_o atheism_n in_o particular_a that_o be_v call_v atomical_a but_o whereas_o there_o have_v be_v already_o mention_v another_o form_n of_o atheism_n call_v by_o we_o hylozoical_a the_o principle_n hereof_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v insist_v on_o in_o this_o place_n where_o we_o be_v to_o make_v the_o most_o plausible_a plea_n for_o atheism_n they_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o of_o the_o atomical_a so_o that_o they_o will_v have_v mutual_o destroy_v each_o other_o for_o whereas_o the_o atomick_a atheism_n suppose_v the_o notion_n or_o idea_n of_o body_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o extend_v resist_a bulk_n and_o consequent_o to_o include_v no_o manner_n of_o life_n and_o cogitation_n in_o it_o hylozoism_n on_o the_o contrary_n make_v all_o body_n as_o such_o and_o therefore_o every_o small_a atom_n of_o it_o to_o have_v life_n essential_o belong_v to_o it_o natural_a perception_n and_o appetite_n though_o without_o any_o animal_n sense_n or_o reflexive_a knowledge_n as_o if_o life_n and_o matter_n or_o extend_v bulk_n be_v but_o two_o incomplete_a and_o inadequate_a conception_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n call_v body_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o life_n not_o animal_n but_o only_o plastical_a all_o part_n of_o matter_n be_v suppose_v able_a to_o form_v themselves_o artificial_o and_o methodical_o though_o without_o any_o deliberation_n or_o attentive_a consideration_n to_o the_o great_a advantage_n of_o their_o present_a respective_a capability_n and_o therefore_o also_o sometime_o by_o organization_n to_o improve_v themselves_o further_o into_o sense_n and_o self-enjoyment_n in_o all_o animal_n as_o also_o to_o universal_a reason_n and_o reflexive_a knowledge_n in_o man_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n at_o all_o left_a either_o of_o any_o incorporeal_a soul_n in_o man_n to_o make_v they_o rational_a or_o of_o any_o deity_n in_o the_o whole_a universe_n to_o salve_v the_o regularity_n thereof_o one_o main_a difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o form_n of_o atheism_n be_v this_o that_o the_o atomical_a suppose_v all_o life_n whatsoever_o to_o be_v accidental_a generable_a and_o corruptible_a but_o the_o hylozoick_n admit_v of_o a_o certain_a natural_a or_o plastic_a life_n essential_a and_o substantial_a ingenerable_a and_o incorruptible_a though_o attribute_v the_o same_o only_a to_o matter_n as_o suppose_v no_o other_o substance_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o it_o ii_o now_o to_o prevent_v all_o mistake_v we_o think_v fit_a here_o by_o way_n of_o caution_n to_o suggest_v that_o as_o every_o atomist_n be_v not_o therefore_o necessary_o a_o atheist_n so_o neither_o must_v every_o hylozoist_a needs_o be_v account_v such_o for_o who_o ever_o so_o hold_v the_o life_n of_o matter_n as_o notwithstanding_o to_o assert_v another_o kind_n of_o substance_n also_o that_o be_v immaterial_a and_o incorporeal_a be_v no_o way_n obnoxious_a to_o that_o soul_n imputation_n however_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o dissemble_v but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n here_o betwixt_o these_o two_o atomism_n and_o hylozoism_n in_o this_o regard_n that_o the_o former_a of_o they_o namely_o atomism_n as_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v have_v in_o itself_o a_o natural_a cognation_n and_o conjunction_n with_o incorporeism_n though_o violent_o cut_v off_o from_o it_o by_o the_o democritick_n atheist_n whereas_o the_o latter_a of_o they_o hylozoism_n seem_v to_o have_v altogether_o as_o close_v and_o intimate_v a_o correspondence_n with_o corporealism_n because_o as_o have_v be_v already_o signify_v if_o all_o matter_n as_o such_o have_v not_o only_o such_o a_o life_n perception_n and_o self-active_a power_n in_o it_o as_o whereby_o it_o can_v form_n itself_o to_o the_o best_a advantage_n make_v this_o a_o sun_n and_o that_o a_o earth_n or_o planet_n and_o fabricate_a the_o body_n of_o animal_n most_o artificial_o but_o also_o can_v improve_v itself_o into_o sense_n and_o self-enjoyment_n it_o may_v as_o well_o be_v think_v able_a to_o advance_v itself_o high_a into_o all_o the_o act_n of_o reason_n and_o understanding_n in_o man_n so_o that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n either_o of_o a_o incorporeal_a immortal_a soul_n in_o man_n or_o a_o deity_n in_o the_o universe_n nor_o indeed_o be_v it_o easy_o conceivable_a how_o any_o shall_v be_v induce_v to_o admit_v such_o a_o monstrous_a paradox_n as_o this_o be_v that_o every_o atom_n of_o dust_n or_o other_o senseless_a matter_n be_v wise_a than_o the_o great_a politician_n and_o the_o most_o acute_a philosopher_n that_o ever_o be_v as_o have_v a_o infallible_a omniscience_n of_o all_o its_o own_o capability_n and_o congruity_n be_v it_o not_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o strong_a prepossession_n against_o incorporeal_a substance_n and_o a_o deity_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o extravagánt_a and_o outrageous_o wild_a which_o a_o mind_n once_o infect_v with_o atheistical_a sottishness_n and_o disbelief_n will_v not_o rather_o greedy_o swallow_v down_o than_o admit_v a_o deity_n which_o to_o such_o be_v the_o high_a of_o all_o paradox_n imaginable_a and_o the_o most_o affrightful_a bugbear_n notwithstanding_o all_o which_o it_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o one_o who_o real_o entertain_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o deity_n and_o a_o rational_a soul_n immortal_a
rough_a and_o smooth_a hookey_n and_o crooked_a atom_n he_o judge_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o mere_a dream_n and_o dotage_n of_o democritus_n not_o teach_v but_o wish_v here_o we_o see_v that_o strato_n deny_v the_o world_n to_o be_v make_v by_o a_o deity_n or_o perfect_a understanding_n nature_n as_o well_o as_o democritus_n and_o yet_o that_o he_o dissent_v from_o democritus_n notwithstanding_o hold_v another_o kind_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o original_a of_o thing_n than_o he_o do_v who_o give_v no_o account_n of_o any_o active_a principle_n and_o cause_n of_o motion_n nor_o of_o the_o regularity_n that_o be_v in_o thing_n democritus_n his_o nature_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o fortuitous_a motion_n of_o matter_n but_o strato_n nature_n be_v a_o inward_a plastic_a life_n in_o the_o several_a part_n of_o matter_n whereby_o they_o can_v artificial_o frame_v themselves_o to_o the_o best_a advantage_n according_a to_o their_o several_a capability_n without_o any_o conscious_a or_o reflexive_a knowledge_n quicquid_fw-la aut_fw-la sit_fw-la aut_fw-la fiat_fw-la say_v the_o same_o author_n naturalibus_fw-la fieri_fw-la aut_fw-la factum_fw-la esse_fw-la docet_fw-la ponderibus_fw-la &_o motibus_fw-la strato_n teach_v whatsoever_o be_v or_o be_v make_v to_o be_v make_v by_o certain_a inward_a natural_a force_n and_o activity_n vi_o furthermore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o though_o strato_n thus_o attribute_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o life_n to_o matter_n yet_o he_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n allow_v of_o any_o one_o common_a life_n whether_o sentient_a and_o rational_a or_o plastic_a and_o spermatick_a only_a as_o rule_v over_o the_o whole_a mass_n of_o matter_n and_o corporeal_a universe_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n in_o part_n affirm_v by_o plutarch_n colotem_fw-la and_o may_v in_o part_n be_v gather_v from_o these_o word_n of_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d strato_n affirm_v that_o the_o world_n be_v no_o animal_n or_o god_n but_o that_o what_o be_v natural_a in_o every_o thing_n follow_v something_o fortuitous_a antecedent_n chance_v first_o beginning_n and_o nature_n act_v consequent_o thereupon_o the_o full_a sense_n whereof_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o that_o though_o strato_n do_v not_o derive_v the_o original_a of_o all_o mundane_a thing_n from_o mere_a fortuitous_a mechanism_n as_o democritus_n before_o he_o have_v do_v but_o suppose_v a_o life_n and_o natural_a perception_n in_o the_o matter_n that_o be_v directive_n of_o it_o yet_o not_o acknowledge_v any_o one_o common_a life_n whether_o animal_n or_o plastic_a as_o govern_v and_o sway_v the_o whole_a but_o only_o suppose_v the_o several_a part_n of_o matter_n to_o have_v so_o many_o several_a plastic_a life_n of_o their_o own_o he_o must_v needs_o attribute_v something_o to_o fortune_n and_o make_v the_o mundane_a system_n to_o depend_v upon_o a_o certain_a mixture_n of_o chance_n and_o plastic_a or_o orderly_a nature_n both_o together_o and_o consequent_o must_v be_v a_o hylozoist_a thus_o we_o see_v that_o these_o be_v two_o scheme_n of_o atheism_n very_o different_a from_o one_o another_o that_o which_o fetch_v the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n from_o the_o mere_a fortuitous_a and_o unguided_a motion_n of_o matter_n without_o any_o vital_a or_o directive_n principle_n and_o that_o which_o derive_v it_o from_o a_o certain_a mixture_n of_o chance_n and_o the_o life_n of_o matter_n both_o together_o it_o suppose_v a_o plastic_a life_n not_o in_o the_o whole_a universe_n as_o one_o thing_n but_o in_o all_o the_o several_a part_n of_o matter_n by_o themselves_o the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v the_o atomick_a and_o democritick_n atheism_n the_o second_o the_o hylozoick_a and_o stratonick_a vii_o it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v suspect_v by_o some_o that_o the_o famous_a hypocrates_n who_o live_v long_o before_o strato_n 5._o be_v a_o assertour_n of_o the_o hylozoick_a atheism_n because_o of_o such_o passage_n in_o he_o as_o these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nature_n be_v unlearned_a or_o untaught_a but_o it_o learn_v from_o itself_o what_o thing_n it_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nature_n find_v out_o way_n to_o itself_o not_o by_o ratiocination_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o affirm_v here_o concern_v nature_n by_o hypocrates_n than_o what_o may_v be_v affirm_v likewise_o of_o the_o aristotelick_n and_o platonic_a nature_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o act_v for_o end_n though_o without_o consultation_n and_o ratiocination_n and_o i_o must_v confess_v it_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o way_n mis-becoming_a of_o a_o theist_n to_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o nature_n or_o principle_n in_o the_o universe_n as_o may_v act_v according_a to_o rule_n and_o method_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o end_n and_o in_o order_n to_o the_o best_a though_o itself_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o it_o do_v this_o be_v still_o suppose_v to_o act_v dependent_o upon_o a_o high_a intellectual_a principle_n and_o to_o have_v be_v first_o set_v a_o work_n and_o employ_v by_o it_o it_o be_v otherwise_o nonsense_n but_o to_o assert_v any_o such_o plastic_a nature_n as_o be_v independent_a upon_o any_o high_a intellectual_a principle_n and_o so_o itself_o the_o first_o and_o high_a principle_n of_o activity_n in_o the_o universe_n this_o indeed_o must_v needs_o be_v either_o that_o hylozoick_a atheism_n already_o speak_v of_o or_o else_o another_o different_a form_n of_o atheism_n which_o shall_v afterward_o be_v describe_v but_o though_o hypocrates_n be_v a_o corporealist_n yet_o we_o conceive_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o lie_v under_o the_o suspicion_n of_o either_o of_o those_o two_o atheism_n forasmuch_o as_o himself_o plain_o assert_n a_o high_a intellectual_a principle_n than_o such_o a_o plastic_a nature_n in_o the_o universe_n namely_o a_o heraclitick_a corporeal_a god_n or_o understanding_n fire_n immortal_a pervade_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o these_o word_n 1_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o that_o which_o be_v call_v heat_n or_o fire_n be_v immortal_a and_o omniscient_a and_o that_o it_o see_v hear_v and_o know_v all_o thing_n not_o only_o such_o as_o be_v present_a but_o also_o future_a wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o hypocrates_n be_v neither_o a_o hylozoick_a nor_o democritick_n atheist_n but_o a_o heraclitick_a corporeal_a theist_n viii_o possible_o it_o may_v be_v think_v also_o that_o plato_n in_o his_o sophist_n intend_v this_o hylozoick_a atheism_n where_o he_o declare_v it_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o nature_n generate_v all_o thing_n from_o a_o certain_a spontaneous_a principle_n without_o any_o reason_n and_o understanding_n but_o here_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v as_o well_o render_v fortuitous_a as_o spontaneous_a however_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o artificial_a or_o methodical_a unknow_a nature_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o plato_n himself_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o certain_a plastic_a or_o methodical_a nature_n in_o the_o universe_n subordinate_a to_o the_o deity_n or_o that_o perfect_a mind_n which_o be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o these_o word_n of_o he_o sophist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o nature_n do_v rational_o or_o orderly_o together_o with_o reason_n and_o mind_n govern_v the_o whole_a universe_n where_o he_o suppose_v a_o certain_a regular_a nature_n to_o be_v a_o partial_a and_o subordinate_a cause_n of_o thing_n under_o the_o divine_a intellect_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o aristotle_n derive_v that_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o his_o concern_v a_o regular_a and_o artificial_a nature_n which_o act_n for_o end_n from_o the_o platonic_a school_n but_o as_o for_o any_o such_o form_n of_o atheism_n as_o shall_v suppose_v a_o plastic_a or_o regular_a but_o senseless_a nature_n either_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o the_o several_a part_n of_o matter_n by_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o high_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n we_o do_v not_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v any_o intimation_n of_o it_o to_o be_v find_v any_o where_o in_o plato_n for_o in_o his_o de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la where_o he_o profess_o dispute_v against_o atheism_n he_o state_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o after_o this_o manner_n 10._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o nature_n and_o chance_n produce_v all_o the_o first_o great_a and_o most_o excellent_a thing_n but_o that_o the_o small_a thing_n be_v produce_v by_o humane_a art_n the_o plain_a meaning_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o the_o first_o original_a of_o thing_n and_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o whole_a universe_n proceed_v from_o a_o mere_a fortuitous_a nature_n or_o the_o motion_n of_o matter_n unguided_a by_o any_o art_n or_o method_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v further_o explain_v in_o the_o follow_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n
this_o opinion_n be_v further_o confute_v by_o that_o slow_a and_o gradual_a process_n that_o be_v in_o the_o generation_n of_o thing_n which_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v but_o a_o vain_a and_o idle_a pomp_n or_o a_o trifle_a formality_n if_o the_o agent_n be_v omnipotent_a as_o also_o by_o those_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o aristotle_n call_v they_o those_o error_n and_o bungles_a which_o be_v commit_v when_o the_o matter_n be_v inept_v and_o contumacious_a which_o argue_v the_o agent_n not_o to_o be_v irresistible_a and_o that_o nature_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o altogether_o uncapable_a as_o well_o as_o humane_a art_n of_o be_v sometime_o frustrate_v and_o disappoint_v by_o the_o indisposition_n of_o matter_n whereas_o a_o omnipotent_a agent_n as_o it_o can_v dispatch_v its_o work_n in_o a_o moment_n so_o it_o will_v always_o do_v it_o infallible_o and_o irresistible_o no_o ineptitude_n or_o stubbornness_n of_o matter_n be_v ever_o able_a to_o hinder_v such_o a_o one_o or_o make_v he_o bungle_v or_o fumble_v in_o any_o thing_n 5._o wherefore_o since_o neither_o all_o thing_n be_v produce_v fortuitous_o or_o by_o the_o unguided_a mechanism_n of_o matter_n nor_o god_n himself_o may_v reasonable_o be_v think_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n immediate_o and_o miraculous_o it_o may_v well_o be_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v a_o plastic_a nature_n under_o he_o which_o as_o a_o inferior_a and_o subordinate_a instrument_n do_v drudge_o execute_v that_o part_n of_o his_o providence_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o regular_a and_o orderly_a motion_n of_o matter_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o there_o be_v also_o beside_o this_o a_o high_a providence_n to_o be_v acknowledge_v which_o preside_v over_o it_o do_v often_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o it_o and_o sometime_o overrule_a it_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o plastic_a nature_n can_v act_v elective_o nor_o with_o discretion_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n will_v not_o be_v shut_v up_o nor_o conclude_v whole_o within_o his_o own_o breast_n but_o will_v display_v itself_o abroad_o and_o print_v its_o stamp_n and_o signature_n every_o where_o throughout_o the_o world_n so_o that_o god_n as_o plato_n after_o orpheus_n speak_v will_v be_v not_o only_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_n but_o also_o the_o middle_a of_o all_o thing_n they_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o his_o causality_n as_o if_o himself_o have_v do_v they_o all_o immediate_o without_o the_o concurrent_a instrumentality_n of_o any_o subordinate_a natural_a cause_n notwithstanding_o which_v in_o this_o way_n it_o will_v appear_v also_o to_o humane_a reason_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v dispose_v and_o order_v by_o the_o deity_n without_o any_o solicitous_a care_n or_o distractious_a providence_n and_o indeed_o those_o mechanic_n theist_n who_o reject_v a_o plastic_a nature_n affect_v to_o concern_v the_o deity_n as_o little_a as_o be_v possible_a in_o mundane_a affair_n either_o for_o fear_n of_o debase_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o down_o to_o too_o mean_a office_n or_o else_o of_o subject_v he_o to_o solicitous_a encumberment_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n will_v have_v god_n to_o contribute_v nothing_o more_o to_o the_o mundane_a system_n and_o oeconomy_n than_o only_o the_o first_o impress_v of_o a_o certain_a quantity_n of_o motion_n upon_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o after-conserving_a of_o it_o according_a to_o some_o general_a law_n these_o man_n i_o say_v seem_v not_o very_o well_o to_o understand_v themselves_o in_o this_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n either_o suppose_v these_o their_o law_n of_o motion_n to_o execute_v themselves_o or_o else_o be_v force_v perpetual_o to_o concern_v the_o deity_n in_o the_o immediate_a motion_n of_o every_o atom_n of_o matter_n throughout_o the_o universe_n in_o order_n to_o the_o execution_n and_o observation_n of_o they_o the_o former_a of_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n plain_o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a and_o the_o latter_a that_o which_o these_o philosopher_n themselves_o be_v extreme_o abhorrent_n from_o we_o can_v make_v any_o other_o conclusion_n than_o this_o that_o they_o do_v but_o unskilful_o and_o unaware_o establish_v that_o very_a thing_n which_o in_o word_n they_o oppose_v and_o that_o their_o law_n of_o nature_n concern_v motion_n be_v real_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o plastic_a nature_n act_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o whole_a corporeal_a universe_n both_o maintain_v the_o same_o quantity_n of_o motion_n always_o in_o it_o and_o also_o dispense_v it_o by_o transfer_v it_o out_o of_o one_o body_n into_o another_o according_a to_o such_o law_n fatal_o impress_v upon_o it_o now_o if_o there_o be_v a_o plastic_a nature_n that_o govern_v the_o motion_n of_o matter_n every_o where_o according_a to_o law_n there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n give_v why_o the_o same_o may_v not_o also_o extend_v further_o to_o the_o regular_a disposal_n of_o that_o matter_n in_o the_o formation_n of_o plant_n and_o animal_n and_o other_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o that_o apt_a coherent_a frame_n and_o harmony_n of_o the_o whole_a universe_n 6._o and_o as_o this_o plastic_a nature_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o itself_o most_o reasonable_a so_o have_v it_o also_o have_v the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o best_a philosopher_n in_o all_o age_n for_o first_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o aristotle_n concern_v himself_o in_o nothing_o more_o zealous_o than_o this_o that_o mundane_a thing_n be_v not_o effect_v mere_o by_o the_o necessary_a and_o unguided_a motion_n of_o matter_n or_o by_o fortuitous_a mechanism_n but_o by_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o act_n regular_o and_o artificial_o for_o end_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o this_o nature_n be_v not_o the_o high_a principle_n neither_o or_o the_o supreme_a numen_fw-la but_o subordinate_a to_o a_o perfect_a mind_n or_o intellect_n he_o affirm_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o mind_n together_o with_o nature_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o universe_n and_o that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n plant_n and_o animal_n be_v frame_v by_o they_o both_o that_o be_v by_o mind_n as_o the_o principal_a and_o directive_n cause_n but_o by_o nature_n as_o a_o subservient_fw-fr or_o executive_a instrument_n and_o elsewhere_o join_v in_o like_a manner_n god_n and_o nature_n both_o together_o as_o when_o he_o conclude_v that_o god_n and_o nature_n do_v nothing_o in_o vain_a neither_o be_v aristotle_n the_o first_o broacher_n or_o inventor_n of_o this_o doctrine_n plato_n before_o he_o have_v plain_o assert_v the_o same_o for_o in_o a_o passage_n already_o cite_v he_o affirm_v that_o nature_n together_o with_o reason_n and_o according_a to_o it_o order_n all_o thing_n thereby_o make_v nature_n as_o a_o distinct_a thing_n from_o the_o deity_n to_o be_v a_o subordinate_a cause_n under_o the_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n of_o it_o and_o elsewhere_o he_o resolve_v that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d certain_a cause_n of_o a_o wise_a and_o artificial_a nature_n which_o the_o deity_n use_v as_o subservient_fw-fr to_o itself_o as_o also_o that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d concause_n which_o god_n make_v use_v of_o as_o subordinate_o cooperative_a with_o himself_o moreover_o before_o plato_n empedocles_n philosophize_v also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n when_o suppose_v two_o world_n the_o one_o archetypal_a the_o other_o extypal_n he_o make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d friendship_n &_o discord_n to_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o active_a principle_n and_o immediate_a operator_n in_o this_o low_a world_n he_o not_o understand_v thereby_o as_o plutarch_n and_o some_o other_o have_v conceit_v two_o substantial_a principle_n in_o the_o world_n the_o one_o of_o good_a the_o other_o of_o evil_n but_o only_o a_o plastic_a nature_n as_o aristotle_n in_o sundry_a place_n intimate_v which_o he_o call_v by_o that_o name_n partly_o because_o he_o apprehend_v that_o the_o result_n and_o upshot_n of_o nature_n in_o all_o generation_n and_o corruption_n amount_v to_o nothing_o more_o than_o mixture_n and_o separation_n or_o concretion_n and_o secretion_n of_o preexistent_a thing_n and_o partly_o because_o this_o plastic_a nature_n be_v that_o which_o do_v reconcile_v the_o contrariety_n and_o enmity_n of_o particular_a thing_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o one_o general_n harmony_n in_o the_o whole_a which_o latter_a be_v a_o notion_n that_o plotinus_n describe_v this_o very_a seminary_n reason_n or_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o world_n though_o take_v it_o in_o something_o a_o large_a sense_n than_o we_o do_v in_o this_o place_n do_v ingenious_o pursue_v after_o this_o manner_n 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o seminary_n reason_n or_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o universe_n oppose_v the_o part_n to_o one_o another_o and_o make_v they_o several_o indigent_a produce_v by_o that_o mean_v war_n and_o contention_n
and_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v one_o yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o consist_v of_o different_n and_o contrary_a thing_n for_o there_o be_v hostility_n in_o its_o part_n it_o be_v nevertheless_o friendly_a and_o agreeable_a in_o the_o whole_a after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o in_o a_o dramatic_a poem_n clashing_n and_o contention_n be_v reconcile_v into_o one_o harmony_n and_o therefore_o the_o seminary_n and_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o world_n may_v fit_o be_v resemble_v to_o the_o harmony_n of_o disagree_a thing_n which_o plotinick_n doctrine_n may_v well_o pass_v for_o a_o commentary_n upon_o empedocles_n according_o as_o simplicius_n brief_o represent_v his_o sense_n 10._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d empedocles_n make_v two_o world_n the_o one_o unite_v and_o intelligible_a the_o other_o divide_v and_o sensible_a and_o in_o this_o low_a sensible_a world_n he_o take_v notice_n both_o of_o unity_n and_o discord_n it_o be_v before_o observe_v that_o heraclitus_n likewise_o do_v assert_v a_o regular_a and_o artificial_a nature_n as_o the_o fate_n of_o thing_n in_o this_o low_a world_n for_o his_o reason_n pass_v through_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o ethereal_a body_n which_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o universe_n be_v nothing_o but_o that_o spermatick_a or_o plastic_a nature_n which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o and_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o odd_a passage_n of_o this_o philosopher_n record_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o neither_o any_o god_n nor_o man_n make_v this_o world_n which_o as_o it_o be_v just_o deride_v by_o plutarch_n for_o its_o simplicity_n so_o it_o look_v very_o atheistical_o at_o first_o sight_n yet_o because_o heraclitus_n have_v not_o be_v account_v a_o atheist_n we_o therefore_o conceive_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o to_o have_v be_v this_o that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o make_v by_o any_o whatsoever_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o a_o artificer_n make_v a_o house_n by_o machines_n and_o engine_n act_v from_o without_o upon_o the_o matter_n cumbersom_o and_o moliminous_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a inward_a plastic_a nature_n of_o its_o own_o and_o as_o hypocrates_n follow_v heraclitus_n in_o this_o as_o be_v before_o declare_v so_o do_v zeno_n and_o the_o stoic_n also_o they_o suppose_v beside_o a_o intellectual_a nature_n as_o the_o supreme_a architect_n and_o master-builder_n of_o the_o world_n another_o plastic_a nature_n as_o the_o immediate_a workman_n and_o operator_n which_o plastic_a nature_n have_v be_v already_o describe_v in_o the_o word_n of_o balbus_n as_o a_o thing_n which_o act_v not_o fortuitous_o but_o regular_o orderly_o and_o artificial_o and_o laertius_n tell_v z●n_n we_o it_o be_v define_v by_o zeno_n himself_o after_o this_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nature_n be_v a_o habit_n move_v from_o itself_o according_a to_o spermatick_a reason_n or_o seminal_a principle_n perfect_v and_o contain_v those_o several_a thing_n which_o in_o determinate_a time_n be_v produce_v from_o it_o and_o act_v agreeable_o to_o that_o from_o which_o it_o be_v secrete_v last_o as_o the_o latter_a platonist_n and_o peripatetic_n have_v unanimous_o follow_v their_o master_n herein_o who_o vegetative_a soul_n also_o be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o plastic_a nature_n so_o the_o chemist_n and_o paracelsian_n insist_v much_o upon_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o seem_v rather_o to_o have_v carry_v the_o notion_n on_o further_a in_o the_o body_n of_o animal_n where_o they_o call_v it_o by_o a_o new_a name_n of_o their_o own_o the_o archaeus_n moreover_o we_o can_v but_o observe_v here_o that_o as_o among_o the_o ancient_n they_o be_v general_o condemn_v for_o downright_a atheist_n who_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o principle_n beside_o body_n or_o matter_n necessary_o and_o fortuitous_o move_v such_o as_o democritus_n and_o the_o first_o jonicks_n so_o even_o anaxagoras_n himself_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v a_o profess_a theist_n and_o plain_o assert_v mind_n to_o be_v a_o principle_n yet_o because_o he_o attribute_v too_o much_o to_o material_a necessity_n admit_v neither_o this_o plastic_a nature_n nor_o a_o mundane_a soul_n be_v severe_o censure_v not_o only_o by_o the_o vulgar_a who_o unjust_o tax_v he_o for_o a_o atheist_n but_o also_o by_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n as_o a_o kind_n of_o spurious_a and_o imperfect_a theist_n and_o one_o who_o have_v give_v great_a advantage_n to_o atheism_n aristotle_n in_o his_o metaphysic_n thus_o represent_v his_o philosophy_n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d anaxagoras_n use_v mind_n and_o intellect_n that_o be_v god_n as_o a_o machine_n in_o the_o cosmopoeia_fw-la and_o when_o he_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o thing_n by_o material_a necessity_n then_o and_o never_o but_o then_o do_v he_o draw_v in_o mind_n or_o god_n to_o help_v he_o out_o but_o otherwise_o he_o will_v rather_o assign_v any_o thing_n else_o for_o a_o cause_n than_o mind_n now_o if_o aristotle_n censure_v anaxagoras_n in_o this_o manner_n though_o a_o profess_a theist_n because_o he_o do_v but_o seldom_o make_v use_n of_o a_o mental_a cause_n for_o the_o salve_v of_o the_o phaenomena_n of_o the_o world_n and_o only_o then_o when_o he_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n for_o other_o material_a and_o mechanical_a cause_n which_o it_o seem_v he_o sometime_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v what_o will_v that_o philosopher_n have_v think_v of_o those_o our_o so_o confident_a mechanist_n of_o late_a time_n who_o will_v never_o vouchsafe_v so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o be_v behold_v to_o god_n almighty_a for_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o corporeal_a world_n after_o the_o first_o impression_n of_o motion_n upon_o the_o matter_n plato_n likewise_o in_o his_o phaedo_fw-la and_o elsewhere_o condemn_v this_o anaxagoras_n by_o name_n for_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o though_o he_o acknowledge_v mind_n to_o be_v a_o cause_n yet_o he_o seldom_o make_v use_n of_o it_o for_o salve_v the_o phaenomena_n but_o in_o his_o twelve_o de_fw-la legibus_fw-la he_o perstringe_v he_o unnamed_a as_o one_o who_o though_o a_o profess_a theist_n have_v notwithstanding_o give_v great_a encouragement_n to_o atheism_n after_o this_o manner_n steph._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o of_o they_o who_o have_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v mind_n that_o order_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o heaven_n themselves_o err_v concern_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o not_o make_v that_o old_a than_o the_o body_n have_v overturn_v all_o again_o for_o heavenly_a body_n be_v suppose_v by_o they_o to_o be_v full_a of_o stone_n and_o earth_n and_o other_o inanimate_a thing_n dispense_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o whole_a universe_n they_o do_v by_o this_o mean_v occasion_n much_o atheism_n and_o impiety_n furthermore_o the_o same_o plato_n there_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o those_o time_n of_o he_o astronomer_n and_o physiologer_n common_o lay_v under_o the_o prejudice_n and_o suspicion_n of_o atheism_n among_o the_o vulgar_a mere_o for_o this_o reason_n because_o they_o deal_v so_o much_o in_o material_a cause_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o vulgar_a think_v that_o they_o who_o addict_v themselves_o to_o astronomy_n and_o physiology_n be_v make_v atheist_n thereby_o they_o see_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a how_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v by_o material_a necessity_n and_o be_v thereby_o dispose_v to_o think_v they_o not_o to_o be_v order_v by_o mind_n and_o will_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o good_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o according_a to_o the_o natural_a apprehension_n of_o man_n in_o all_o age_n they_o who_o resolve_v the_o phaenomena_n of_o nature_n into_o material_a necessity_n allow_v of_o no_o final_a nor_o mental_a causality_n dispose_v thing_n in_o order_n to_o end_n have_v be_v strong_o suspect_v for_o friend_n to_o atheism_n 7._o but_o because_o some_o may_v pretend_v that_o the_o plastic_a nature_n be_v all_o one_o with_o a_o occult_a quality_n we_o shall_v here_o show_v how_o great_a a_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o these_o two_n for_o he_o that_o assert_v a_o occult_a quality_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o any_o phaenomenon_n do_v indeed_o assign_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o of_o it_o but_o only_o declare_v his_o own_o ignorance_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o he_o that_o assert_v a_o plastic_a nature_n assign_v a_o determinate_a and_o proper_a cause_n nay_o the_o only_a intelligible_a cause_n of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o phaenomena_n in_o the_o world_n namely_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o orderly_a regular_a and_o artificial_a frame_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o universe_n whereof_o the_o mechanic_n philosopher_n however_o pretend_v to_o salve_v all_o phaenomena_n by_o matter_n and_o motion_n assign_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o mind_n and_o understanding_n be_v the_o only_a true_a cause_n of_o orderly_a regularity_n and_o he_o that_o assert_v a_o plastic_a nature_n assert_n mental_a causality_n in_o
be_v not_o the_o deity_n itself_o but_o a_o thing_n very_o remote_a from_o it_o and_o far_o below_o it_o so_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o divine_a art_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o pure_a and_o abstract_n but_o concrete_a and_o embody_v only_o for_o the_o divine_a art_n consider_v in_o itself_o be_v nothing_o but_o knowledge_n understanding_n or_o wisdom_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n now_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o certain_a separate_a and_o abstract_a thing_n and_o of_o so_o subtle_a and_o refine_a a_o nature_n as_o that_o it_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v incorporate_v with_o matter_n or_o mingle_v and_o blend_v with_o it_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o aristotle_n second_o instance_n which_o he_o propound_v as_o most_o pertinent_a to_o illustrate_v this_o business_n of_o nature_n by_o namely_o of_o the_o physician_n art_n cure_v himself_o be_v not_o so_o adequate_a thereunto_o because_o when_o the_o medicinal_a art_n cure_v the_o physician_n in_o who_o it_o be_v it_o do_v not_o there_o act_n as_o nature_n that_o be_v as_o concrete_a and_o embody_v art_n but_o as_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n only_o which_o be_v art_n naked_a abstract_a and_o unbodied_a as_o also_o it_o do_v its_o work_n ambagious_o by_o the_o physician_n be_v willing_a and_o prescribe_v to_o himself_o the_o use_n of_o such_o medicament_n as_o do_v but_o conduce_v by_o remove_v of_o impediment_n to_o help_v that_o which_o be_v nature_n indeed_o or_o the_o inward_a archaeus_n to_o effect_v the_o cure_n art_n be_v define_v by_o aristotle_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n without_o matter_n and_o so_o the_o divine_a art_n or_o knowledge_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n be_v unbodied_a reason_n but_o nature_n be_v ratio_fw-la mersa_fw-la &_o confusa_fw-la reason_n immerse_v and_o plunge_v into_o matter_n and_o as_o it_o be_v fuddle_v in_o it_o and_o confound_v with_o it_o nature_n be_v not_o the_o divine_a art_n archetypal_a but_o only_o ectypal_a it_o be_v a_o live_a stamp_n or_o signature_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n which_o though_o it_o act_v exact_o according_a to_o its_o arthetype_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o comprehend_v nor_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o itself_o do_v and_o the_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o may_v be_v resemble_v to_o that_o between_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o reason_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o conception_n call_v verbum_fw-la mentis_fw-la and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o reason_n of_o external_n speech_n the_o latter_a of_o which_o though_o it_o bear_v a_o certain_a stamp_n and_o impress_n of_o the_o former_a upon_o it_o yet_o itself_o be_v nothing_o but_o articulate_v sound_a devoid_a of_o all_o understanding_n and_o sense_n or_o else_o we_o may_v illustrate_v this_o business_n by_o another_o similitude_n compare_v the_o divine_a art_n and_o wisdom_n to_o a_o architect_n but_o nature_n to_o a_o manuary_a opificer_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o which_o two_o be_v thus_o set_v forth_o by_o aristotle_n pertinent_o to_o our_o purpose_n ●_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o account_v the_o architect_n in_o every_o thing_n more_o honourable_a than_o the_o manuary_a opificer_n because_o they_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v whereas_o the_o other_o as_o some_o inanimate_a thing_n only_o do_v not_o know_v what_o they_o do_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o be_v only_o this_o that_o inanimate_a thing_n act_n by_o a_o certain_a nature_n in_o they_o but_o the_o manuary_a opificer_n by_o habit._n thus_o nature_n may_v be_v call_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o manuary_a opificer_n that_o act_v subservient_o under_o the_o architectonical_a art_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o divine_a understanding_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o do_v do_v without_o know_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o ●t_a do_v 12._o wherefore_o as_o we_o do_v before_o observe_v the_o preeminence_n of_o nature_n above_o humane_a art_n so_o we_o must_v here_o take_v notice_n also_o of_o the_o imperfection_n and_o defect_n of_o it_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o fall_v short_a of_o humane_a art_n which_o be_v likewise_o two_o and_o the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v this_o that_o though_o it_o act_n artificial_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o end_n yet_o itself_o do_v neither_o intend_v those_o end_n nor_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o that_o it_o do_v nature_n be_v not_o master_n of_o that_o consummate_v art_n and_o wisdom_n according_a to_o which_o it_o act_n but_o only_o a_o servant_n to_o it_o and_o a_o drudge_a executioner_n of_o the_o dictate_v of_o it_o this_o difference_n betwixt_o nature_n and_o abstract_n art_n or_o wisdom_n be_v express_v by_o plotinus_n in_o these_o word_n 13._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d how_o do_v wisdom_n differ_v from_o that_o which_o be_v call_v nature_n very_o in_o this_o manner_n that_o wisdom_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n but_o nature_n the_o last_o and_o low_a for_o nature_n be_v but_o a_o image_n or_o imitation_n of_o wisdom_n the_o last_o thing_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o have_v the_o low_a impress_n of_o reason_n shine_v upon_o it_o as_o when_o a_o thick_a piece_n of_o wax_n be_v thorough_o impress_v upon_o by_o a_o seal_n that_o impress_n which_o be_v clear_a and_o distinct_a in_o the_o superior_a superficies_n of_o it_o will_v in_o the_o low_a side_n be_v weak_a and_o obscure_a and_o such_o be_v the_o stamp_n and_o signature_n of_o nature_n compare_v with_o that_o of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n nature_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o do_v only_o do_v but_o not_o know-worth_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o same_o writer_n declare_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o spermatick_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 17._o or_o reason_n and_o knowledge_n or_o conception_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o this_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whether_o be_v these_o plastic_a reason_n or_o form_n in_o the_o soul_n knowledge_n but_o how_o shall_v it_o then_o act_n according_a to_o those_o knowledge_n for_o the_o plastic_a reason_n or_o form_n act_n or_o work_v in_o matter_n and_o that_o which_o act_n natural_o be_v not_o intellection_n nor_o vision_n but_o a_o certain_a power_n of_o move_a matter_n which_o do_v not_o know_v but_o only_o do_v and_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o stamp_n or_o figure_n in_o water_n and_o with_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_n a_o modern_a judicious_a writer_n and_o sagacious_a inquirer_n into_o nature_n seem_v full_o to_o agree_v that_o nature_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o do_v not_o know_v but_o only_o do_v for_o after_o he_o have_v admire_v that_o wisdom_n and_o art_n by_o which_o the_o body_n of_o animal_n be_v frame_v he_o conclude_v that_o one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o either_o the_o vegetative_a or_o plastic_a power_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o which_o it_o fabricate_v and_o organizes_n its_o own_o body_n be_v more_o excellent_a and_o divine_a than_o the_o rational_a or_o else_o 49._o in_o naturae_fw-la operibus_fw-la neque_fw-la prudentiam_fw-la nec_fw-la intellectum_fw-la inesse_fw-la sedita_fw-la solùm_fw-la videri_fw-la conceptui_fw-la nostro_fw-la qui_fw-la secundùm_fw-la art_fw-la nostras_fw-la &_o facultates_fw-la seu_fw-la exemplaria_fw-la à_fw-la nobismetipsis_fw-la mutuata_fw-la de_fw-la rebus_fw-la naturae_fw-la divinis_fw-la judicamus_fw-la quasi_fw-la principia_fw-la naturae_fw-la activa_fw-la effectus_fw-la suos_fw-la eo_fw-la modo_fw-la producerent_fw-la quo_fw-la nos_fw-la opera_fw-la nostra_fw-la artificialia_fw-la solemus_fw-la that_o in_o the_o work_v of_o nature_n there_o be_v neither_o prudence_n nor_o understanding_n but_o only_o it_o seem_v so_o to_o our_o apprehension_n who_o judge_n of_o these_o divine_a thing_n of_o nature_n according_a to_o our_o own_o art_n and_o faculty_n and_o pattern_n borrow_v from_o ourselves_o as_o if_o the_o active_a principle_n of_o nature_n do_v produce_v their_o effect_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o we_o do_v our_o artificial_a work_n wherefore_o we_o conclude_v agreeable_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o best_a philosopher_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a that_o nature_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o though_o it_o act_v artificial_o and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o end_n yet_o it_o do_v but_o ape_n and_o mimic_n the_o divine_a art_n and_o wisdom_n itself_o not_o understanding_n those_o end_n which_o it_o act_v for_o nor_o the_o reason_n of_o what_o it_o do_v in_o order_n to_o they_o for_o which_o cause_n also_o it_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o consultation_n or_o deliberation_n nor_o can_v it_o act_n elective_o or_o with_o discretion_n 13._o but_o because_o this_o may_v seem_v strange_a at_o the_o first_o sight_n that_o nature_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o act_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o sake_n of_o end_n and_o regular_o or_o artificial_o and_o yet_o be_v
affirm_v of_o these_o his_o inferior_a intelligence_n likewise_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o supreme_a mover_n that_o they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d move_v only_o as_o the_o end_n where_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o though_o aristotle_n do_v plain_o suppose_v a_o mundane_a intellectual_a soul_n such_o as_o also_o contain_v either_o in_o it_o or_o under_o it_o a_o plastic_a nature_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o make_v either_o of_o these_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a deity_n but_o resolve_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v one_o absolute_o perfect_a mind_n or_o intellect_n separate_a from_o matter_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o immovable_a nature_n who_o essence_n be_v his_o operation_n and_o which_o move_v only_o as_o be_v lou●d_v or_o as_o the_o final_a cause_n of_o which_o he_o pronounce_v in_o this_o manner_n par._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o upon_o such_o a_o principle_n as_o this_o heaven_n and_o nature_n depend_v that_o be_v the_o animate_v heaven_n or_o mundane_a soul_n together_o with_o the_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o universe_n must_v of_o necessity_n depend_v upon_o such_o a_o absolute_o perfect_a and_o immovable_a mind_n or_o intellect_n have_v now_o declare_v the_o aristotelick_n doctrine_n concern_v the_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o universe_n with_o which_o the_o platonic_a also_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d either_o part_n of_o a_o mundane_a intellectual_a soul_n that_o be_v a_o low_a power_n and_o faculty_n of_o it_o or_o else_o not_o without_o it_o but_o some_o inferior_a thing_n depend_v on_o it_o we_o think_v sit_v to_o add_v in_o this_o place_n that_o though_o there_o be_v no_o such_o mundane_a soul_n as_o both_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n suppose_v distinct_a from_o the_o supreme_a deity_n yet_o th●re_o may_v notwithstanding_o be_v a_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o universe_n depend_v immediate_o upon_o the_o deity_n itself_o for_o the_o plastic_a nature_n essential_o depend_v upon_o mind_n or_o intellect_n and_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v without_o it_o according_a to_o those_o word_n before_o cite_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nature_n depend_v upon_o such_o a_o intellectual_a principle_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o philosopher_n do_v elsewhere_o join_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mind_n and_o nature_n both_o together_o 25._o beside_o this_o general_n plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o universe_n and_o those_o particular_a plastic_a power_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o animal_n it_o be_v not_o impossible_a but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v other_o plastic_a nature_n also_o as_o certain_o low_a life_n or_o vegetative_a soul_n in_o some_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universe_n all_o of_o they_o depend_v if_o not_o upon_o some_o high_a conscious_a soul_n yet_o at_o least_o upon_o a_o perfect_a intellect_n preside_v over_o the_o whole_a as_o for_o example_n though_o it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o every_o plant_n herb_n and_o pile_n of_o grass_n have_v a_o particular_a plastic_a life_n or_o vegetative_a soul_n of_o its_o own_o distinct_a from_o the_o mechanism_n of_o the_o body_n nor_o that_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v a_o animal_n endue_v with_o a_o conscious_a soul_n yet_o there_o may_v possible_o be_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v one_o plastic_a nature_n or_o life_n belong_v to_o the_o whole_a terrestrial_a or_o terraqueous_a globe_n by_o which_o all_o plant_n and_o vegetable_n continuous_a with_o it_o may_v be_v different_o form_v according_a to_o their_o different_a seed_n as_o also_o mineral_n and_o other_o body_n frame_v and_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v above_o the_o power_n of_o fortuitous_a mechanism_n effect_v as_o by_o the_o immediate_a cause_n though_o always_o subordinate_a to_o other_o cause_n the_o chief_a whereof_o be_v the_o deity_n and_o this_o perhaps_o may_v ease_v the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o can_v but_o think_v it_o too_o much_o to_o impose_v all_o upon_o one_o plastic_a nature_n of_o the_o universe_n 26._o and_o now_o we_o have_v finish_v our_o first_o task_n which_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o plastic_a nature_n the_o sum_n whereof_o brief_o amount_v to_o this_o that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a low_a life_n than_o the_o animal_n which_o act_v regular_o and_o artificial_o according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o mind_n and_o understanding_n reason_n and_o wisdom_n for_o end_n or_o in_o order_n to_o good_a though_o itself_o do_v not_o know_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o it_o do_v nor_o be_v master_n of_o that_o wisdom_n according_a to_o which_o it_o act_n but_o only_o a_o servant_n to_o it_o and_o drudge_a executioner_n of_o the_o same_o it_o operate_a fatal_o and_o sympathetical_o according_a to_o law_n and_o command_n prescribe_v to_o it_o by_o a_o perfect_a intellect_n and_o impress_v upon_o it_o and_o which_o be_v either_o a_o low_a faculty_n of_o some_o conscious_a soul_n or_o else_o a_o inferior_a kind_n of_o life_n or_o soul_n by_o itself_o but_o essential_o depend_v upon_o a_o high_a intellect_n we_o proceed_v to_o our_o second_o undertake_n which_o be_v to_o show_v how_o gross_o those_o two_o sort_n of_o atheist_n before_o mention_v the_o stoical_a or_o cosmoplastick_a and_o the_o stratonical_a or_o hylozoick_a both_o of_o they_o acknowledge_v this_o plastic_a life_n of_o nature_n do_v mistake_v the_o notion_n of_o it_o or_o pervert_v it_o and_o abuse_v it_o to_o make_v a_o certain_a spurious_a and_o counterfeit_n god-almighty_a of_o it_o or_o a_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n thereby_o exclude_v the_o true_a omnipotent_a deity_n which_o be_v a_o perfect_a mind_n or_o conscious_o understanding_n nature_n preside_v over_o the_o universe_n they_o substitute_v this_o stupid_a plastic_a nature_n in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o now_o the_o chief_a error_n or_o mistake_v of_o these_o atheist_n concern_v the_o plastic_a nature_n be_v these_o four_o follow_v first_o that_o they_o make_v that_o to_o be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o and_o the_o high_a thing_n in_o the_o universe_n which_o be_v the_o last_o and_o low_a of_o all_o life_n a_o thing_n essential_o secondary_a derivative_a and_o dependent_a for_o the_o plastic_a life_n of_o nature_n be_v but_o the_o mere_a vmbrage_n of_o intellectuality_n a_o faint_a and_o shadowy_a imitation_n of_o mind_n and_o understanding_n upon_o which_o it_o do_v as_o essential_o depend_v as_o the_o shadow_n do_v upon_o the_o body_n the_o image_n in_o the_o glass_n upon_o the_o face_n or_o the_o echo_n upon_o the_o original_a voice_n so_o that_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o perfect_a mind_n or_o intellect_n in_o the_o world_n there_o can_v no_o more_o have_v be_v any_o plastic_a nature_n in_o it_o than_o there_o can_v be_v a_o image_n in_o the_o glass_n without_o a_o face_n or_o a_o echo_n without_o a_o original_a voice_n if_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d than_o there_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o there_o be_v a_o plastic_a nature_n that_o act_v regular_o and_o artificial_o in_o order_n to_o end_n and_o according_a to_o the_o best_a wisdom_n though_o itself_o not_o comprehend_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o nor_o be_v clear_o conscious_a of_o what_o it_o do_v then_o there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o perfect_a mind_n or_o intellect_n that_o be_v a_o deity_n upon_o which_o it_o depend_v wherefore_o aristotle_n do_v like_o a_o philosopher_n in_o join_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nature_n and_o mind_n both_o together_o but_o these_o atheist_n do_v very_o absurd_o and_o unphilosophical_o that_o will_v make_v a_o senseless_a and_o inconscious_a plastic_a nature_n and_o therefore_o without_o any_o mind_n or_o intellect_n to_o be_v the_o first_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n second_o these_o atheist_n augment_v the_o former_a error_n in_o suppose_v those_o high_a life_n of_o sense_n or_o animality_n and_o of_o reason_n or_o understanding_n to_o rise_v both_o of_o they_o from_o that_o low_a senseless_a life_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o only_a original_a fundamental_a life_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o as_o irrational_a and_o absurd_a as_o if_o one_o shall_v suppose_v the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o the_o air_n or_o aether_n to_o be_v the_o only_a original_a and_o fundamental_a light_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o star_n but_o a_o secondary_a and_o derivative_a thing_n from_o it_o and_o nothing_o but_o the_o light_n of_o the_o air_n modificate_v and_o improve_v by_o condensation_n or_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v maintain_v that_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o all_o the_o star_n be_v real_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o mere_a reflection_n of_o those_o image_n that_o we_o see_v in_o river_n and_o pond_n of_o water_n but_o this_o have_v always_o be_v the_o sottish_a humour_n and_o guise_n of_o atheist_n to_o invert_v the_o order_n of_o the_o
of_o man-sacrifice_n against_o a_o modern_a diatribist_n 67._o that_o what_o faith_n soever_o plato_n may_v have_v in_o the_o delphic_a apollo_n he_o be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o evil_a daemon_n or_o devil_n a_o answer_n to_o the_o pagan_n argument_n from_o divine_a providence_n 68_o that_o the_o pagan_n religion_n unsound_a in_o its_o foundation_n be_v infinite_o more_o corrupt_v and_o deprave_v by_o mean_n of_o these_o four_o thing_n first_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o ignorant_a vulgar_a 69._o second_o the_o licentious_a figment_n of_o poet_n and_o fable-monger_n frequent_o condemn_v by_o plato_n and_o other_o wise_a pagan_n 70._o three_o the_o craft_n of_o priest_n and_o politician_n 71._o last_o the_o imposture_n of_o evil_a daemon_n or_o devil_n that_o by_o mean_n of_o these_o four_o thing_n the_o pagan_a religion_n become_v a_o most_o foul_a and_o unclean_a thing_n and_o as_o some_o be_v captivate_v by_o it_o under_o a_o most_o grievous_a yoke_n of_o superstition_n so_o other_o strong_o incline_v to_o atheism_n 72._o plato_n not_o insensible_a that_o the_o pagan_a religion_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o reformation_n nevertheless_o suppose_v many_o of_o those_o religious_a rite_n to_o have_v be_v introduce_v by_o vision_n dream_n and_o oracle_n he_o conclude_v that_o no_o wise_a legislator_n will_v of_o his_o own_o head_n venture_v to_o make_v a_o alteration_n imply_v that_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v effect_v otherwise_o than_o by_o divine_a revelation_n and_o miracle_n the_o general_o receive_v opinion_n of_o the_o pagan_n that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o trouble_v himself_o about_o religion_n but_o content_v himself_o to_o worship_n god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o that_o country_n which_o he_o live_v in_o 73._o wherefore_o god_n almighty_a in_o great_a compassion_n to_o mankind_n design_v himself_o to_o reform_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o pagan_a world_n by_o introduce_v another_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o frame_n in_o stead_n of_o it_o after_o he_o have_v first_o make_v a_o praeludium_n thereunto_o in_o one_o nation_n of_o the_o israelite_n where_o he_o express_o prohibit_v by_o a_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o fire_n in_o his_o first_o commandment_n the_o pagan_a polytheism_n or_o the_o worship_v of_o other_o inferior_a deity_n beside_o himself_o and_o in_o the_o second_o their_o idolatry_n or_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o supreme_a god_n in_o image_n statue_n or_o symbol_n beside_o which_o he_o restrain_v the_o use_n of_o sacrifice_n as_o also_o successive_o give_v prediction_n of_o a_o messiah_n to_o come_v such_o as_o together_o with_o miracle_n may_v reasonable_o conciliate_v faith_n to_o he_o when_o he_o come_v 74._o that_o afterward_o in_o due_a time_n god_n send_v the_o promise_a messiah_n who_o be_v the_o eternal_a word_n hypostatical_o unite_v with_o a_o pure_a humane_a soul_n and_o body_n and_o so_o a_o true_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o god-man_n design_v he_o for_o a_o live_a temple_n and_o visible_a statue_n or_o image_n in_o which_o the_o deity_n shall_v be_v represent_v and_o worship_v as_o also_o after_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v invest_v with_o all_o power_n and_o authority_n for_o a_o prince_n and_o king_n a_o mediator_n and_o intercessor_n betwixt_o god_n and_o men._n 75._o that_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o god-man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o intend_v to_o require_v men-sacrifice_n of_o his_o worshipper_n as_o the_o pagan_a demon_n do_v that_o he_o devote_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o catharma_n &_o expiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o thereby_o also_o abolish_v all_o sacrifice_n or_o oblation_n by_o fire_n whatsoever_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a prediction_n 76._o that_o the_o christian_a trinity_n though_o a_o mystery_n be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n than_o the_o platonic_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n at_o all_o in_o suppose_v the_o pure_a soul_n and_o body_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o be_v make_v a_o live_a temple_n or_o shechinah_n image_n or_o statue_n of_o the_o deity_n that_o this_o religion_n of_o one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god-man_n preach_v to_o the_o pagan_a world_n and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n do_v effectual_o destroy_v all_o the_o pagan_a inferior_a deity_n middle_a god_n and_o mediator_n demon_n and_o hero_n together_o with_o their_o statue_n and_o image_n 77._o that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n incongruous_a to_o suppose_v that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n in_o prescribe_v a_o form_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o world_n shall_v gracious_o condescend_v to_o comply_v with_o humane_a infirmity_n in_o order_n to_o the_o remove_n of_o two_o such_o grand_a evil_n as_o polytheism_n and_o idolatry_n and_o the_o bring_n of_o man_n to_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n 78._o that_o demon_n and_o angel_n hero_n and_o saint_n be_v but_o different_a name_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v god_n by_o be_v worship_v and_o that_o the_o introduce_v of_o angel_n and_o saint-worship_n together_o with_o image-worship_n into_o christianity_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o defeat_n of_o one_o grand_a design_n of_o god_n almighty_n in_o it_o and_o the_o paganize_a of_o that_o which_o be_v intend_v for_o the_o vnpaganize_a of_o the_o world_n 79._o another_o key_n for_o christianity_n in_o the_o scripture_n not_o disagree_v with_o the_o former_a that_o since_o the_o way_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n prove_v ineffectual_a as_o to_o the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n man_n may_v by_o the_o contrivance_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v bring_v to_o god_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n without_o profound_a knowledge_n in_o the_o way_n of_o believe_v 80._o that_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o high_a more_o precious_a and_o divine_a light_n than_o that_o of_o theory_n and_o speculation_n 81._o that_o in_o christianity_n all_o the_o great_a goodly_a and_o most_o glorious_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n be_v slurry_v and_o disgrace_v comparative_o with_o the_o life_n of_o christ._n 82._o and_o that_o there_o be_v all_o possible_a engine_n in_o it_o to_o bring_v man_n up_o to_o god_n and_o engage_v they_o in_o a_o holy_a life_n 83._o two_o error_n here_o to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o first_o of_o those_o who_o make_v christianity_n nothing_o but_o a_o antinomian_a plot_n against_o real_a righteousness_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o secret_a confederacy_n with_o the_o devil_n the_o second_o of_o those_o who_o turn_v that_o into_o matter_n of_o mere_a notion_n and_o opinion_n dispute_v and_o controversy_n which_o be_v design_v by_o god_n only_o as_o a_o contrivance_n machin_n or_o engine_n to_o bring_v man_n effectual_o to_o a_o holy_a and_o godly_a life_n 84._o that_o christianity_n may_v be_v yet_o further_o illustrate_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o adversary_n or_o satanical_a power_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n this_o no_v manichean_a substantial_a evil_n principle_n but_o a_o polity_n of_o lapse_v angel_n with_o which_o the_o soul_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v also_o incorporate_v and_o may_v therefore_o be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n 85._o the_o history_n of_o the_o fall_v angel_n in_o scripture_n brief_o explain_v 86._o the_o concurrent_a agreement_n of_o the_o pagan_n concern_v evil_a demon_n or_o devil_n and_o their_o activity_n in_o the_o world_n 87._o that_o there_o be_v a_o perpetual_a war_n betwixt_o two_o polity_n or_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n the_o one_o of_o light_n the_o other_o of_o darkness_n and_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n or_o the_o messiah_n be_v appoint_v the_o head_n or_o chieftain_n over_o the_o heavenly_a militia_n or_o the_o force_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o light_n 88_o that_o there_o will_v be_v at_o length_n a_o palpable_a and_o signal_n overthrow_n of_o the_o satanical_a power_n and_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o darkness_n by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n appear_v in_o a_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a manner_n and_o that_o this_o great_a affair_n be_v to_o be_v manage_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o god_n vicegerent_n and_o a_o visible_a judge_n both_o of_o quick_a and_o dead_a 89._o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n design_v not_o to_o set_v up_o himself_o factious_o against_o god_n almighty_a nor_o to_o be_v account_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d superior_a to_o god_n but_o that_o when_o he_o have_v do_v his_o work_n and_o put_v down_o all_o adversary_n power_n himself_o will_v then_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n even_o the_o father_n that_o so_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o 90._o last_o have_v speak_v of_o three_o form_n of_o religious_a the_o jewish_a christian_a and_o the_o pagan_a and_o there_o remain_v only_o a_o four_o the_o mahometan_a in_o which_o the_o divine_a monarchy_n be_v zealous_o assert_v we_o may_v now_o conclude_v that_o the_o idea_n of_o
be_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v something_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v selforiginated_n and_o self-existing_a and_o which_o be_v as_o well_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d incorruptible_a and_o vndestroyable_a as_o ingenerable_a who_o existence_n therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v necessary_a because_o if_o it_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v happen_v by_o chance_n to_o exist_v from_o eternity_n than_o it_o may_v as_o well_o happen_v again_o to_o cease_v to_o be._n wherefore_o all_o the_o question_n now_o be_v what_o be_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o ingenerable_a and_o incorruptible_a selforiginated_n and_o selfexistent_a thing_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v iv_o now_o there_o be_v two_o grand_a opinion_n opposite_a to_o one_o another_o concern_v it_o for_o first_o some_o contend_v that_o the_o only_a selfexistent_a unmake_v and_o incorruptible_a thing_n and_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v senseless_a matter_n that_o be_v matter_n either_o perfect_o dead_a and_o stupid_a or_o at_o least_o devoid_a of_o all_o animalish_n and_o conscious_a life_n but_o because_o this_o be_v real_o the_o low_a and_o most_o imperfect_a of_o all_o being_n other_o on_o the_o contrary_a judge_n it_o reasonable_a that_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v that_o which_o be_v most_o perfect_a as_o aristotle_n observe_v of_o pherecydes_n and_o his_o follower_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o make_v the_o first_o cause_n and_o principle_n of_o generation_n to_o be_v the_o best_a and_o then_o apprehend_v that_o to_o be_v endue_v with_o conscious_a life_n and_o understanding_n be_v much_o a_o great_a perfection_n than_o to_o be_v devoid_a of_o both_o as_o balbus_n in_o cicero_n declare_v upon_o this_o very_a occasion_n nec_fw-la dubium_fw-la quin_fw-la quod_fw-la animans_fw-la sit_fw-la 2._o habeátque_fw-la mentem_fw-la &_o rationem_fw-la &_o sensum_fw-la id_fw-la sit_fw-la melius_fw-la quàm_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la his_fw-la careat_fw-la they_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o the_o only_o unmake_v thing_n which_o be_v the_o principle_n cause_n and_o original_a of_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v not_o senseless_a matter_n but_o a_o perfect_a conscious_a understanding_n nature_n or_o mind_n and_o these_o be_v they_o who_o be_v strict_o and_o proper_o call_v theist_n who_o affirm_v that_o a_o perfect_o conscious_a understanding_n be_v or_o mind_n exist_v of_o itself_o from_o eternity_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o they_o on_o the_o contrary_n who_o derive_v all_o thing_n from_o senseless_a matter_n as_o the_o first_o original_a and_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o conscious_a understanding_n be_v selfexistent_a or_o unmake_v be_v those_o that_o be_v proper_o call_v atheist_n wherefore_o the_o true_a and_o genuine_a idea_n of_o god_n in_o general_n be_v this_o a_o perfect_a conscious_a understanding_n be_v or_o mind_n exist_v of_o itself_o from_o eternity_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n v._o but_o it_o be_v here_o observable_a that_o those_o atheist_n who_o deny_v a_o god_n according_a to_o this_o true_a and_o genuine_a notion_n of_o he_o which_o we_o have_v declare_v do_v often_o abuse_v the_o word_n call_v senseless_a matter_n by_o that_o name_n partly_o perhaps_o as_o endeavour_v thereby_o to_o decline_v that_o odious_a and_o ignominious_a name_n of_o atheist_n and_o partly_o as_o conceive_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o thing_n ingenerable_a and_o incorruptible_a and_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o itself_o must_v therefore_o needs_o be_v the_o divine_a thing_n of_o all_o wherefore_o by_o the_o word_n god_n these_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unmake_v or_o selfexistent_a and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o first_o principle_n of_o thing_n thus_o it_o be_v before_o observe_v that_o anaximander_n call_v infinite_a matter_n devoid_a of_o all_o manner_n of_o life_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o god_n and_o pliny_n the_o corporeal_a world_n endue_v with_o nothing_o but_o a_o plastic_a unknowing_a nature_n numen_fw-la as_o also_o other_o in_o aristotle_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n call_v the_o inanimate_a element_n god_n as_o supposed_n first_o principle_n of_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o these_o be_v also_o go_n and_o indeed_o aristotle_n himself_o seem_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o miscarriage_n of_o abuse_v the_o word_n god_n after_o this_o manner_n when_o speak_v of_o love_n and_o chaos_n 4._o as_o the_o two_o first_o principle_n of_o thing_n he_o must_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o grammar_n be_v understand_v to_o call_v they_o both_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d concern_v these_o two_o god_n how_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v rank_v and_o which_o of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v place_v first_o whether_o love_n or_o chaos_n be_v afterward_o to_o be_v resolve_v which_o passage_n of_o aristotle_n seem_v to_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o epicharmus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o chaos_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v make_v the_o first_o of_o the_o god_n unless_o we_o shall_v rather_o understand_v he_o thus_o that_o chaos_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v make_v before_o the_o go_n and_o this_o abuse_n of_o the_o word_n god_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o the_o learned_a origen_n take_v notice_n of_o in_o his_o book_n against_o celsus_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o religious_a care_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v have_v about_o the_o use_n of_o word_n caut._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o therefore_o that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o consideration_n of_o these_o thing_n will_v take_v a_o religious_a care_n that_o he_o give_v not_o improper_a name_n to_o thing_n leave_v he_o shall_v fall_v into_o a_o like_a miscarriage_n with_o those_o who_o attribute_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o inanimate_a and_o senseless_a matter_n now_o according_a to_o this_o false_a and_o spurious_a notion_n of_o the_o word_n god_n when_o it_o be_v take_v for_o any_o suppose_a first_o principle_n or_o selfexistent_a unmake_v thing_n whatsoever_o that_o be_v there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o atheist_n since_o whosoever_o have_v but_o the_o least_o dram_n of_o reason_n must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o something_o or_o other_o exi_v from_o eternity_n unmake_v and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v but_o that_o notion_n or_o idea_n of_o god_n according_a to_o which_o some_o be_v atheist_n and_o some_o theist_n be_v in_o the_o strict_a sense_n of_o it_o what_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v a_o perfect_a mind_n or_o conscious_o understanding_n nature_n selfexistent_a from_o eternity_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n the_o genuine_a theist_n be_v those_o who_o make_v the_o first_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n universal_o to_o be_v a_o conscious_o understanding_n nature_n or_o perfect_a mind_n but_o the_o atheist_n proper_o such_o as_o derive_v all_o thing_n from_o matter_n either_o perfect_o dead_a and_o stupid_a or_o else_o devoid_a of_o all_o conscious_a and_o animalish_n life_n vi_o but_o that_o we_o may_v more_o full_o and_o punctual_o declare_v the_o true_a idea_n of_o god_n we_o must_v here_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o certain_a opinion_n of_o some_o philosopher_n who_o go_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o middle_n betwixt_o both_o the_o former_a and_o neither_o make_a matter_n alone_o nor_o god_n the_o sole_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o join_v they_o both_o together_o and_o hold_v two_o first_o principle_n or_o selfexistent_a unmake_v being_n independent_a upon_o one_o another_o god_n and_o the_o matter_n among_o who_o the_o stoic_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v who_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o substance_n beside_o body_n strange_o confound_v themselves_o be_v by_o that_o mean_v necessitate_v to_o make_v their_o two_o first_o principle_n the_o active_a and_o the_o passive_a to_o be_v both_o of_o they_o real_o but_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a substance_n their_o doctrine_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v thus_o declare_v by_o cicero_n naturam_fw-la dividebant_fw-la in_o res_fw-la dvas_fw-la ut_fw-la altera_fw-la esset_fw-la efficiens_fw-la altera_fw-la autem_fw-la quasi_fw-la huic_fw-la se_fw-la praebens_fw-la ex_fw-la qua_fw-la efficeretur_fw-la aliquid_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la quod_fw-la efficeret_fw-la vim_fw-la esse_fw-la censebant_fw-la in_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la efficeretur_fw-la materiam_fw-la quandam_fw-la in_fw-la utroque_fw-la tamen_fw-la utrumque_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la materiam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la ohaerere_fw-la potuisse_fw-la si_fw-la nullâ_fw-la vi_o contineretur_fw-la neque_fw-la vim_fw-la sine_fw-la aliqua_fw-la materia_fw-la
it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n shall_v believe_v a_o multiplicity_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o idea_n of_o god_n before_o declare_v that_o be_v a_o multiplicity_n of_o supreme_a omnipotent_a or_o infinite_o powerful_a being_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pagan_a polytheism_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o god_n must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o some_o other_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n god_n or_o some_o equivocation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o it_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v sometime_o among_o the_o pagan_n such_o who_o mean_v nothing_o else_o by_o god_n but_o understanding_n being_n superior_a to_o man_n do_v suppose_v a_o multitude_n of_o such_o deity_n which_o yet_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v all_o as_o well_o as_o man_n native_a and_o mortal_a generate_v successive_o out_o of_o matter_n and_o corrupt_a again_o into_o it_o as_o democritus_n his_o idol_n be_v but_o these_o theogonist_n who_o thus_o generate_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o the_o god_n themselves_o universal_o out_o of_o night_n and_o chaos_n the_o ocean_n or_o fluid_n matter_n notwithstanding_o their_o use_v the_o name_n god_n be_v plain_o condemn_v both_o by_o aristotle_n and_o plato_n for_o downright_a atheist_n they_o make_v senseless_a matter_n the_o only_a selfexistent_a thing_n and_o the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n wherefore_o there_o may_v be_v another_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n god_n as_o take_v for_o understanding_n being_n superior_a to_o man_n that_o be_v not_o only_o immortal_a but_o also_o selfexistent_a and_o unmake_v and_o indeed_o the_o assertor_n of_o a_o multiplicity_n of_o such_o god_n as_o these_o though_o they_o can_v be_v account_v theist_n in_o a_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n according_a to_o that_o idea_n of_o god_n before_o declare_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o vulgar_o repute_v atheist_n neither_o but_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o kind_n of_o middle_a thing_n betwixt_o both_o and_o common_o call_v polytheist_n the_o reason_n whereof_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o because_o it_o be_v general_o apprehend_v to_o be_v essential_a to_o atheism_n to_o make_v senseless_a matter_n the_o sole_a original_a of_o all_o thing_n and_o consequent_o to_o suppose_v all_o conscious_a intellectual_a being_n to_o be_v make_v or_o generate_v wherefore_o they_o who_o on_o the_o contrary_n assert_v not_o one_a but_o many_o understanding_n being_n unmake_v and_o selfexistent_a must_v needs_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o those_o who_o of_o the_o two_o approach_v near_o to_o theism_n than_o to_o atheism_n and_o so_o deserve_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v polytheist_n than_o atheist_n and_o there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o the_o urger_n of_o the_o forementioned_a objection_n against_o that_o idea_n of_o god_n which_o include_v oneliness_n and_o singularity_n in_o it_o from_o the_o pagan_a polytheism_n or_o multiplicity_n of_o god_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o many_o unmake_v selfexistent_a deity_n independent_a upon_o one_o supreme_a that_o be_v so_o many_o first_o principle_n in_o the_o universe_n and_o partial_a cause_n of_o the_o world_n and_o certain_o if_o it_o can_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v that_o the_o pagan_a polytheist_n do_v universal_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o multiplicity_n of_o unmake_v selfexistent_a deity_n than_o the_o argument_n fetch_v from_o thence_o against_o the_o naturality_n of_o that_o idea_n of_o god_n propose_v essential_o include_v singularity_n in_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o small_a force_n or_o validity_n in_o it_o xii_o but_o first_o this_o opinion_n of_o many_o selfexistent_a deity_n independent_a upon_o one_o supreme_a be_v both_o very_o irrational_a in_o itself_o and_o also_o plain_o repugnant_a to_o the_o phaenomena_n we_o say_v first_o it_o be_v irrational_a in_o itself_o because_o self-existence_n and_o necessary_a existence_n be_v essential_a to_o a_o perfect_a be_v and_o to_o nothing_o else_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o irrational_a and_o absurd_a to_o suppose_v a_o multitude_n of_o imperfect_a understanding_n being_n selfexistent_a and_o no_o perfect_a one._n moreover_o if_o imperfect_a understanding_n being_n be_v imagine_v to_o exist_v of_o themselves_o from_o eternity_n there_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v any_o reason_n give_v why_o just_a so_o many_o of_o they_o shall_v exist_v and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o there_o be_v indeed_o no_o reason_n why_o any_o at_o all_o shall_v but_o if_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o these_o many_o selfexistent_a deity_n happen_v only_o to_o exist_v thus_o from_o eternity_n and_o their_o existence_n notwithstanding_o be_v not_o necessary_a but_o contingent_a the_o consequence_n hereof_o will_v be_v that_o they_o may_v as_o well_o happen_v again_o to_o cease_v to_o be_v and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v incorruptible_a again_o if_o any_o one_o imperfect_a be_v whatsoever_o can_v exist_v of_o itself_o from_o eternity_n than_o all_o may_v as_o well_o do_v so_o not_o only_a matter_n but_o also_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o other_o animal_n and_o consequent_o there_o can_v be_v no_o creation_n by_o any_o deity_n nor_o those_o supposed_a deity_n therefore_o deserve_v that_o name_n last_o we_o may_v also_o add_v that_o there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o intellectual_a being_n selfexistent_a because_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o reason_n that_o all_o imperfect_a understanding_n being_n or_o mind_n do_v partake_v of_o one_o perfect_a mind_n and_o suppose_v also_o omnipotence_n or_o infinite_a power_n be_v it_o not_o that_o this_o be_v a_o consideration_n too_o remote_a from_o vulgar_a apprehension_n and_o therefore_o not_o so_o fit_a to_o be_v urge_v in_o this_o place_n again_o as_o this_o opinion_n of_o many_o selfexistent_a deity_n be_v irrational_a in_o itself_o so_o be_v it_o likewise_o plain_o repugnant_a to_o the_o phaenomena_n of_o the_o world_n in_o which_o as_o macrobius_n write_v omnia_fw-la sunt_fw-la connexa_fw-la all_o thing_n conspire_v together_o into_o one_o harmony_n and_o be_v carry_v on_o peaceable_o and_o quiet_o constant_o and_o eavenly_a without_o any_o tumult_n or_o hurly-bur_o confusion_n or_o disorder_n or_o the_o least_o appearance_n of_o schism_n and_o faction_n which_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v suppose_v be_v the_o world_n make_v and_o govern_v by_o a_o rabble_n of_o selfexistent_a deity_n coordinate_a and_o independent_a upon_o one_o supreme_a wherefore_o this_o kind_n of_o polytheism_n be_v obiter_fw-la thus_o confute_v by_o origen_n 8._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d how_o much_o better_a be_v it_o agreable_o to_o what_o we_o see_v in_o the_o harmonious_a system_n of_o the_o world_n to_o worship_v one_o only_a maker_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v one_o and_o conspire_v throughout_o with_o its_o whole_a self_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v make_v by_o many_o artificer_n as_o neither_o be_v contain_v by_o many_o soul_n move_a the_o whole_a heaven_n now_o since_o this_o opinion_n be_v both_o irrational_a in_o itself_o and_o repugnant_a to_o the_o phaenomena_n there_o be_v the_o less_o probability_n that_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v receive_v and_o entertain_v by_o all_o the_o more_o intelligent_a pagan_n xiii_o who_o that_o they_o do_v not_o thus_o universal_o look_v upon_o all_o their_o god_n as_o so_o many_o unmake_v selfexistent_a being_n be_v unquestionable_o manifest_a from_o hence_o because_o ever_o since_o hesiod_n and_o homer_n time_n at_o least_o the_o greekish_a pagan_n general_o acknowledge_v a_o theogonia_n a_o generation_n and_o temporary_a production_n of_o the_o god_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v universal_o neither_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v no_o theist_n who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v some_o selfexistent_a deity_n concern_v this_o theogonia_n herodotus_n write_v after_o this_o manner_n 53._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whence_o every_o one_o of_o the_o god_n be_v generate_v or_o whether_o they_o all_o of_o they_o ever_o be_v and_o what_o be_v their_o form_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o know_v till_o very_o late_o for_o hesiod_n and_o homer_n be_v as_o i_o suppose_v not_o above_o four_o hundred_o year_n my_o senior_n and_o these_o be_v they_o who_o introduce_v the_o theogonia_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o give_v the_o god_n their_o several_a name_n that_o be_v settle_v the_o pagan_a theology_n now_o if_o before_o hesiod_n and_o homer_n time_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o know_v or_o determine_v among_o the_o greek_n whether_o their_o god_n be_v generate_v or_o all_o of_o they_o exi_v from_o eternity_n than_o it_o be_v not_o universal_o conclude_v by_o they_o that_o they_o be_v all_o unmake_v and_o selfexistent_a and_o though_o perhaps_o some_o might_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n believe_v one_o way_n and_o some_o another_o concern_v the_o generation_n and_o eternity_n of_o their_o god_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o who_o think_v they_o to_o be_v all_o
istud_fw-la livoris_fw-la est_fw-la &_o avaritiae_fw-la genus_fw-la non_fw-it obtrectatio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la sordens_fw-la svas_fw-la eminere_fw-la solummodo_fw-la velle_fw-la fortunas_fw-la aliorum_fw-la res_fw-la premi_fw-la &_o in_fw-la contempta_fw-la humilitate_fw-la calcari_fw-la natum_fw-la hominem_fw-la colimus_fw-la quid_fw-la enim_fw-la vos_fw-fr hominem_fw-la nullum_fw-la colitis_fw-la natum_fw-la non_fw-it unum_fw-la &_o alium_fw-la non_fw-it innumeros_fw-la alios_fw-la quinimo_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la quos_fw-la jam_fw-la templis_fw-la habetis_fw-la vestris_fw-la mortalium_fw-la sustulistis_fw-la ex_fw-la numero_fw-la &_o coelo_fw-la sideribúsque_fw-la donastis_fw-la concedamus_fw-la interdum_fw-la manum_fw-la vestris_fw-la opinationibus_fw-la dantes_fw-la unum_fw-la christum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la de_fw-la nobis_fw-la mentis_fw-la animae_fw-la corporis_fw-la fragilitatis_fw-la &_o conditionis_fw-la unius_fw-la nun_n dignus_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la tantorum_fw-la ob_fw-la munerum_fw-la gratiam_fw-la deus_fw-la dici_fw-la deúsque_fw-la sentiri_fw-la si_fw-mi enim_fw-la vos_fw-la liberum_fw-la quòd_fw-la reperit_fw-la usum_fw-la vini_fw-la si_fw-la quòd_fw-la panis_fw-la cererem_fw-la si_fw-la aesculapium_fw-la quòd_fw-la herbarum_fw-la si_fw-la minervam_fw-la quòd_fw-la oleae_fw-la si_fw-la triptolemum_fw-la quòd_fw-la aratri_fw-la si_fw-la denique_fw-la herculem_fw-la quòd_fw-la feras_fw-la quòd_fw-la fures_fw-la quòd_fw-la multiplicium_fw-la capitum_fw-la superavit_fw-la compescuítque_fw-la natrice_n divorum_fw-la retulistis_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la honoribus_fw-la quantis_fw-la afficiendus_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la erroribus_fw-la nos_fw-la magnis_fw-la insinuatâ_fw-la veritate_fw-la traduxit_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v these_o the_o god_n who_o be_v so_o much_o offend_v with_o christ_n be_v worship_v and_o account_v a_o god_n by_o we_o they_o who_o be_v forgetful_a of_o their_o former_a condition_n will_v not_o have_v the_o same_o bestow_v upon_o another_o which_o have_v be_v grant_v to_o themselves_o be_v this_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o heavenly_a power_n this_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n or_o be_v it_o not_o rather_o base_a envy_n and_o covetousness_n for_o they_o thus_o to_o engross_v all_o to_o themselves_o we_o worship_v indeed_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v a_o man_n what_o then_o do_v you_o worship_v no_o such_o not_o one_o and_o another_o and_o innumerable_a and_o be_v not_o almos●_n all_o ●our_n god_n such_o as_o be_v take_v from_o out_o of_o the_o rank_n of_o man_n and_o place_v among_o the_o star_n and_o will_v you_o account_v that_o damnable_a in_o we_o which_o you_o yourselves_o practice_n let_v we_o for_o the_o present_n yield_v thus_o much_o to_o your_o infideity_n and_o grant_v that_o christ_n be_v but_o a_o ordinary_a man_n of_o the_o same_o rank_n and_o condition_n with_o other_o mortal_n yet_o may_v we_o not_o for_o all_o that_o according_a to_o your_o principle_n think_v he_o worthy_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a benefit_n we_o receive_v from_o he_o to_o be_v account_v a_o god_n for_o if_o you_o have_v advance_v into_o the_o number_n of_o your_o divi_z bacchus_n or_o libre_fw-la for_o invent_v the_o use_n of_o wine_n ceres_n of_o corn_n aesculapius_n of_o herb_n minerva_n of_o the_o olive_n triptolemus_n of_o the_o blow_n and_o hercules_n for_o subdue_a beast_n thief_n and_o monster_n with_o how_o great_a honour_n ought_v he_o to_o be_v affect_v by_o we_o who_o by_o the_o insinuation_n of_o divine_a truth_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o such_o great_a error_n of_o mind_n etc._n etc._n which_o argumentation_n of_o arnobius_n though_o it_o be_v good_a enough_o ad_fw-la homines_fw-la to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pagan_n there_o be_v more_o reason_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v a_o god_n for_o the_o benefit_n that_o mankind_n receive_v from_o he_o than_o that_o bacchus_n or_o ceres_n or_o hercules_n shall_v be_v so_o yet_o as_o the_o same_o arnobius_n himself_o seem_v to_o intimate_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a without_o something_o else_o superad_v to_o it_o for_o the_o justification_n of_o christianity_n neither_o indeed_o be_v that_o the_o chief_a quarrel_n which_o the_o pagan_n have_v with_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o have_v deify_v one_o who_o be_v crucify_v though_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o a_o great_a offence_n to_o they_o but_o that_o they_o condemn_v the_o pagan_n for_o worship_v other_o beside_o the_o supreme_a omnipotent_a god_n and_o decry_v all_o those_o god_n of_o they_o do_v themselves_o notwithstanding_o worship_v one_o mortal_a man_n for_o a_o god_n 385._o this_o celsus_n urge_v in_o origen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o these_o christian_n themselves_o worship_v not_o other_o but_o one_o god_n or_o the_o pure_a divinty_n then_o may_v they_o perhaps_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o just_a pretence_n of_o censure_v we_o but_o now_o they_o themselves_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o one_o that_o late_o rise_v up_o and_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o do_v not_o at_o all_o offend_v god_n in_o worship_v that_o suppose_a minister_n of_o he_o which_o as_o origen_n make_v there_o a_o reply_n to_o it_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v further_o consider_v by_o we_o afterward_o as_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o particular_a clemens_n alexandrinus_n be_v not_o only_o of_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o pagan_n at_o least_o the_o greekish_a do_v worship_v the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o christian_n though_o not_o after_o a_o right_a manner_n but_o also_o endeavour_n to_o confirm_v it_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n peter_n 635._o that_o the_o greek_n know_v god_n peter_n intimate_v in_o his_o predication_n there_o be_v one_o god_n say_v he_o who_o make_v the_o beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o have_v power_n over_o their_o end_n etc._n etc._n worship_n this_o god_n not_o as_o the_o greek_n do_v wherein_o he_o seem_v to_o suppose_v the_o greek_n to_o worship_v the_o same_o god_n with_o we_o though_o not_o according_a to_o the_o right_a tradition_n receive_v by_o his_o son_n he_o do_v not_o enjoin_v we_o not_o to_o worship_v that_o god_n which_o the_o greek_n worship_n but_o to_o worship_v he_o otherwise_o than_o they_o do_v alter_v only_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o worship_n but_o not_o the_o object_n or_o preach_v another_o god_n and_o what_o that_o be_v not_o to_o worship_n god_n as_o the_o greek_n do_v the_o same_z peter_z intimate_v in_o those_o word_n they_o worship_v he_o in_o image_n of_o wood_n and_o stone_n brass_n and_o iron_n gold_n and_o silver_n and_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o dead_a also_o as_o to_o go_n where_o he_o add_v further_a out_o of_o st._n peter_n predication_n neither_o worship_n god_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v etc._n etc._n the_o one_o and_o only_a god_n say_v clemens_n be_v worship_v by_o the_o greek_n paganical_o by_o the_o jew_n judaical_o but_o by_o we_o new_o and_o spiritual_o for_o the_o same_o god_n who_o give_v the_o two_o testament_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o christian_n give_v philosophy_n to_o the_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n be_v glorify_v among_o the_o greek_n lactantius_n firmianus_n also_o in_o many_o place_n affirm_v 727._o the_o pagan_n to_o have_v acknowledge_v one_o supreme_a deity_n summum_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o philosophi_fw-la &_o poetae_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la denique_fw-la qui_fw-la deos_fw-la colunt_fw-la saepè_fw-la fatentur_fw-la that_o there_o be_v one_o supreme_a deity_n both_o philosopher_n and_o poet_n and_o even_o the_o vulgar_a worshipper_n of_o the_o god_n themselves_o frequent_o acknowledge_v from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o all_o the_o other_o pagan_a god_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o minister_n of_o this_o one_o supreme_a and_o creature_n make_v by_o he_o he_o then_o only_o blame_v they_o for_o call_v they_o god_n and_o give_v they_o religious_a worship_n lib._n 1._o when_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o it_o be_v altogether_o as_o absurd_a to_o suppose_v the_o world_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o many_o independent_a god_n 16._o as_o to_o suppose_v the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o many_o mind_n or_o soul_n independent_a he_o add_v quòd_fw-la quia_fw-la intelligunt_fw-la isti_fw-la assertores_fw-la deorum_fw-la ita_fw-la eos_fw-la praeesse_fw-la singulis_fw-la rebus_fw-la ac_fw-la partibus_fw-la dicunt_fw-la ut_fw-la tantùm_fw-la vnus_fw-la sit_fw-la rector_n eximius_fw-la jam_fw-la ergo_fw-la caeteri_fw-la non_fw-la dii_fw-la erunt_fw-la sed_fw-la satellite_n ac_fw-la ministri_fw-la quos_fw-la ille_fw-la vnus_fw-la maximus_fw-la &_o potens_fw-la omnium_fw-la officiis_fw-la his_fw-la praefecit_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsi_fw-la ejus_fw-la imperio_fw-la &_o nutibus_fw-la serviant_fw-la si_fw-mi universi_fw-la pares_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la igitur_fw-la dii_fw-la omnes_fw-la sunt_fw-la nec_fw-la enim_fw-la potest_fw-la hoc_fw-la idem_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la seruit_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la dominatur_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la nomen_fw-la summae_fw-la potestatis_fw-la incorruptibilis_fw-la esse_fw-la debet_fw-la perfectus_fw-la impassibilis_fw-la nulli_fw-la rei_fw-la subjectus_fw-la ergo_fw-la dii_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la quos_fw-la parere_fw-la uni_fw-la maximo_fw-la deo_fw-la necessitas_fw-la cogit_fw-la which_o because_o the_o assertor_n of_o god_n
back_o again_o only_o to_o he_o so_o that_o this_o oracle_n be_v irreprehensible_a and_o full_a of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o it_o be_v very_o observable_a that_o these_o very_o same_o oracle_n express_o determine_v also_o that_o matter_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unmake_v or_o selfexistent_a but_o derive_v in_o like_a manner_n from_o the_o deity_n which_o we_o learn_v from_o proclus_n upon_o plato_n timaeus_n where_o when_o he_o have_v positive_o assert_v that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o thing_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o supreme_a good_a be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v also_o the_o cause_n of_o matter_n he_o confirm_v this_o assertion_n of_o he_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o oracle_n 118._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o this_o order_n also_o do_v the_o oracle_n deduce_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o these_o word_n from_o thence_o that_o be_v from_o one_o supreme_a deity_n altogether_o proceed_v the_o genesis_n of_o the_o multivarious_a matter_n which_o unquestionable_o be_v one_o of_o those_o very_a magic_n or_o chalday_n oracle_n and_o it_o may_v be_v further_o prove_v from_o hence_o because_o it_o be_v by_o porphyrius_n set_v down_o among_o they_o as_o appear_v from_o aeneas_n gazeus_n in_o his_o theophrastus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neither_o be_v matter_n void_a of_o generation_n or_o beginning_n which_o the_o chaldean_n and_o porphyrius_n teach_v thou_o he_o make_v this_o the_o title_n of_o a_o whole_a book_n publish_v by_o he_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o chaldean_n in_o which_o it_o be_v confirm_v that_o matter_n be_v make_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v also_o in_o these_o magic_n or_o chalday_n oracle_n a_o clear_a signification_n of_o a_o divine_a triad_n have_v be_v already_o declare_v but_o we_o shall_v here_o produce_v proclus_n his_o testimony_n for_o it_o too_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thus_o the_o divine_o deliver_v or_o inspire_a theology_n affirm_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o have_v be_v complete_v from_o these_o three_o psyche_n or_o the_o mundane_a soul_n therein_o speak_v concern_v that_o zeus_n or_o jupiter_n who_o be_v above_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o manner_n etc._n etc._n for_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v that_o proclus_n his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o theology_n of_o divine_a tradition_n or_o revelation_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o oracle_n to_o which_o testimony_n of_o proclus_n we_o may_v also_o superadd_a that_o oracle_n cite_v out_o of_o damascius_n by_o patritius_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o whole_a world_n shine_v forth_o a_o triad_n or_o trinity_n the_o 〈…〉_o a_o monad_n or_o perfect_a unity_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v pla●●e_v xvii_o and_o now_o we_o pass_v out_o of_o asia_n into_o europe_n from_o zor●●s●●●_n to_o orpheus_n 13._o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o some_o eminent_a philologer_n of_o l●t●er_a time_n that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o man_n as_o orpheus_n bu●_n only_o in_o fairy-land_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a history_n of_o orpheus_n be_v nothing_o b●●_n a_o mere_a romantic_a allegory_n utter_o devoid_a of_o all_o truth_n and_o reality_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o allege_v for_o this_o opinion_n from_o antiquity_n save_v only_o this_o one_o passage_n of_o cicero_n concern_v aristotle_n 211._o orpheum_n poctam_fw-la docet_fw-la aristoteles_n nunquam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la aristotle_n teach_v that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o man_n as_o orpheus_n the_o poet_n in_o which_o notwithstanding_o aristotle_n seem_v to_o have_v mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o poet_n as_o orpheus_n senior_n to_o homer_n or_o that_o the_o verse_n vulgar_o call_v orphical_a be_v not_o write_v by_o orpheus_n however_o if_o i●_n shall_v be_v grant_v that_o aristotle_n have_v deny_v the_o existence_n of_o such_o a_o man_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o why_o his_o single_a testimony_n shall_v here_o preponderate_v against_o that_o universal_a consent_n of_o all_o antiquity_n which_o be_v for_o one_o orpheus_n the_o son_n of_o oeager_n by_o birth_n a_o thracian_a the_o father_n or_o chief_a founder_n of_o the_o mythical_a and_o allegorical_a theology_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o of_o all_o their_o most_o arcane_a religious_a rite_n and_o mystery_n who_o be_v common_o suppose_v to_o have_v live_v before_o the_o trojan_a war_n that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o israelitish_n judge_n or_o at_o least_o to_o have_v be_v senior_n both_o to_o hesiod_n and_o homer_n and_o also_o to_o have_v die_v a_o violent_a death_n most_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o woman_n for_o which_o cause_n in_o that_o vision_n of_o herus_fw-la pamphylius_n in_o plato_n 162._o orpheus_n his_o soul_n be_v to_o come_v down_o again_o into_o another_o body_n be_v say_v to_o have_v choose_v rather_o that_o of_o a_o swan_n a_o repute_a musical_a animal_n than_o to_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o a_o woman_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o great_a hatred_n which_o he_o have_v conceive_v of_o all_o womankind_n for_o his_o suffering_n such_o a_o violent_a death_n from_o they_o and_o the_o historick_n truth_n of_o orpheus_n be_v not_o only_o acknowledge_v by_o plato_n but_o also_o by_o isocrates_n seniour_n to_o aristotle_n likewise_o in_o his_o oration_n in_o the_o praise_n of_o busiris_n and_o confirm_v by_o that_o sober_a historiographer_n diodorus_n siculus_n he_o give_v this_o account_n of_o orpheus_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n who_o diligent_o apply_v himself_o to_o literature_n and_o have_v learn_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o mythical_a part_n of_o theology_n travel_v into_o egypt_n where_o he_o attain_v to_o further_a knowledge_n and_o become_v the_o great_a of_o all_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o mysterious_a rite_n of_o religion_n theological_a skill_n and_o poetry_n to_o which_o pausanias_n add_v that_o he_o gain_v great_a authority_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 586._o as_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v find_v out_o expiation_n for_o wicked_a action_n remedy_n for_o disease_n and_o appeasment_n of_o the_o divine_a displeasure_n neither_o be_v this_o history_n of_o orpheus_n contradict_v by_o origen_n when_o celsus_n give_v he_o so_o fit_a a_o occasion_n and_o so_o strong_a a_o provocation_n to_o do_v it_o by_o his_o prefer_v orpheus_n before_o our_o saviour_n christ._n to_o all_o which_o may_v be_v add_v in_o the_o last_o place_n that_o it_o be_v common_o conclude_v from_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o greek_n derive_v their_o teletae_n and_o mystery_n of_o religion_n from_o the_o thracian_n it_o be_v not_o so_o reasonable_a to_o think_v with_o the_o learned_a vossius_fw-la that_o xamolxis_n be_v the_o founder_n of_o they_o and_o not_o orpheus_n this_o xamolxis_n be_v by_o most_o report_v to_o have_v be_v pythagoras_n his_o servant_n and_o consequent_o too_o much_o a_o juniour_n and_o though_o herodotus_n attribute_v more_o antiquity_n to_o he_o yet_o do_v he_o conceive_v he_o to_o have_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o daemon_n who_o appear_v to_o the_o thracian_n be_v worship_v by_o they_o whereas_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o general_n tradition_n of_o the_o greek_n derive_v the_o thracian_a religious_a rite_n and_o mystery_n from_o orpheus_n and_o no_o other_o according_a to_o this_o of_o suidas_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o orpheus_n the_o thracian_a be_v the_o first_o inventor_n of_o the_o religious_a mystery_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o that_o religion_n be_v from_o thence_o call_v threscheia_n as_o be_v a_o thracian_a invention_n wherefore_o though_o it_o may_v well_o be_v grant_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o orpheus_n his_o great_a antiquity_n there_o have_v be_v many_o fabulous_a and_o romantic_a thing_n intermingle_v with_o his_o history_n yet_o there_o appear_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o why_o we_o shall_v disbelieve_v the_o existence_n of_o such_o a_o man._n but_o though_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o orpheus_n yet_o may_v it_o very_o well_o be_v question_v for_o all_o that_o whether_o any_o of_o those_o poem_n common_o entitle_v to_o he_o and_o call_v orphical_a be_v so_o ancient_a and_o indeed_o write_v by_o he_o and_o this_o the_o rather_o because_o herodotus_n declare_v it_o as_o his_o own_o opinion_n that_o hesiod_n and_o homer_n 53._o be_v the_o ancient_a of_o all_o the_o greek_a poet_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o those_o other_o poet_n say_v to_o have_v be_v before_o they_o be_v indeed_o junior_n to_o they_o meaning_n hereby_o in_o all_o probability_n orpheus_n musaeus_n and_o linus_n as_o also_o because_o aristotle_n seem_v plain_o to_o have_v follow_v herodotus_n in_o this_o he_o mention_v the_o orphick_a poem_n in_o
the_o continual_a mixture_n and_o generation_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o skin_n of_o a_o libbard_n because_o of_o the_o bespangle_a heaven_n and_o the_o beautiful_a variety_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o live_v in_o a_o desaert_n because_o of_o the_o singularity_n of_o the_o world_n and_o last_o to_o be_v a_o good_a demon_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o supreme_a mind_n reason_n and_o understanding_n that_o govern_v all_o in_o it_o pan_n therefore_o be_v not_o the_o mere_a corporeal_a world_n senseless_a and_o inanimate_a but_o the_o deity_n as_o display_v itself_o therein_o and_o pervade_v all_o thing_n agreeable_o to_o which_o diodorus_n siculus_n determine_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v but_o two_o several_a name_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o deity_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o whole_a universe_n be_v frequent_o call_v by_o the_o pagan_n jupiter_n also_o as_o well_o as_o pan._n and_o socrates_n himself_o in_o plato_n direct_v his_o prayer_n in_o a_o most_o devout_a and_o serious_a manner_n to_o this_o pan_n that_o be_v not_o the_o corporeal_a world_n or_o senseless_a matter_n but_o a_o intellectual_a principle_n rule_v over_o all_o or_o the_o supreme_a deity_n diffuse_v itself_o through_o all_o he_o therefore_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o inferior_a god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d o_o good_a or_o gracious_a pan_n and_o you_o other_o god_n who_o preside_v over_o this_o place_n grant_v that_o i_o may_v be_v beautiful_a or_o fair_a within_o and_o that_o those_o external_n thing_n which_o i_o have_v may_v be_v such_o as_o may_v best_o agree_v with_o a_o right_n internal_a disposition_n of_o mind_n and_o that_o i_o may_v account_v he_o to_o be_v rich_a that_o be_v wise_a and_o just_a the_o matter_n of_o which_o prayer_n though_o it_o be_v excellent_a yet_o be_v it_o paganical_o direct_v to_o pan_n that_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n and_o the_o inferior_a god_n both_o together_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o as_o well_o according_a to_o the_o greek_n as_o the_o egyptian_n the_o first_o or_o supreme_a god_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o universe_n be_v real_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o here_o we_o can_v but_o by_o the_o way_n take_v notice_n of_o that_o famous_a and_o remarkable_a story_n of_o plutarch_n in_o his_o defect_n of_o oracle_n concern_v demon_n lament_v the_o death_n of_o the_o great_a pan._n in_o the_o time_n of_o tiberius_n say_v he_o certain_a person_n embarque_a from_o asia_n for_o italy_n towards_o the_o evening_n sail_v by_o the_o echinades_n where_o be_v becalm_v they_o hear_v from_o thence_o a_o loud_a voice_n call_v one_o thamous_a a_o egyptian_a mariner_n among_o they_o and_o after_o the_o three_o time_n command_v he_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o palodes_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o great_a pan_n be_v dead_a he_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o company_n resolve_v that_o if_o they_o have_v a_o quick_a gale_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o palodes_n he_o will_v pass_v by_o silent_o but_o if_o they_o shall_v find_v themselves_o there_o becalm_v he_o will_v then_o perform_v what_o the_o voice_n have_v command_v but_o when_o the_o ship_n arrive_v thither_o there_o neither_o be_v any_o gale_n of_o wind_n nor_o agitation_n of_o water_n whereupon_o thamous_a look_n out_o of_o the_o hinder_a deck_n towards_o the_o palodes_n pronounce_v these_o word_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a pan_n be_v dead_a which_o he_o have_v no_o soon_o do_v but_o he_o be_v answer_v with_o a_o choir_n of_o many_o voice_n make_v a_o great_a howl_v and_o lamentation_n not_o without_o a_o certain_a mixture_n of_o admiration_n plutarch_n who_o give_v much_o credit_n to_o this_o relation_n add_v how_o solicitous_a tiberius_n the_o emperor_n be_v first_o concern_v the_o truth_n thereof_o and_o afterward_o when_o he_o have_v satisfy_v himself_o therein_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n he_o make_v great_a enquiry_n among_o his_o learned_a man_n who_o this_o pan_n shall_v be_v but_o the_o only_a use_n which_o that_o philosopher_n make_v of_o this_o story_n be_v this_o to_o prove_v that_o demon_n have_v body_n as_o well_o as_o man_n though_o of_o a_o different_a kind_n from_o they_o and_o much_o more_o longeve_v yet_o be_v notwithstanding_o mortal_a he_o endeavour_v from_o thence_o to_o salve_v that_o phaenomenon_n of_o the_o defect_n of_o oracle_n because_o the_o demon_n who_o have_v former_o haunt_v those_o place_n be_v now_o dead_a but_o this_o be_v a_o idle_a fancy_n of_o plutarch_n it_o be_v much_o more_o probable_o conclude_v by_o christian_a writer_n that_o this_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o tiberius_n when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v crucify_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o lamentation_n of_o evil_a demon_n not_o without_o a_o mixture_n of_o admiration_n upon_o account_n of_o our_o saviour_n death_n happen_v at_o that_o very_a time_n they_o not_o mourn_v out_o of_o love_n for_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a but_o as_o sad_o presage_v evil_a to_o themselves_o from_o thence_o as_o that_o which_o will_v threaten_v danger_n to_o their_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n and_o a_o period_n to_o that_o tyranny_n and_o domination_n which_o they_o have_v so_o long_o exercise_v over_o mankind_n according_a to_o such_o passage_n of_o scripture_n as_o these_o now_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n judge_v and_o have_v spoil_v principality_n and_o power_n by_o his_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o triumph_v over_o they_o in_o it_o now_o our_o saviour_n christ_n can_v not_o be_v call_v pan_n according_a to_o that_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n as_o take_v for_o nothing_o but_o the_o corporeal_a world_n devoid_a of_o all_o manner_n of_o life_n or_o else_o as_o endue_v only_o with_o a_o plastic_a nature_n but_o this_o appellation_n may_v very_o well_o agree_v to_o he_o as_o pan_n be_v take_v for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o reason_n and_o understanding_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o by_o which_o they_o be_v all_o govern_v or_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o divine_a wisdom_n which_o diffuse_v itself_o through_o all_o thing_n moreover_o pan_n be_v use_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o naked_a and_o abstract_a deity_n as_o the_o deity_n as_o it_o be_v embody_v in_o this_o visible_a corporeal_a world_n may_v therefore_o the_o better_a signify_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o clothe_v with_o a_o particular_a humane_a body_n in_o which_o respect_n alone_o he_o be_v capable_a of_o die_v neither_o indeed_o be_v there_o any_o other_o name_n in_o all_o the_o theology_n of_o the_o pagan_n that_o can_v so_o well_o befit_v our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o this_o we_o have_v now_o make_v it_o manifest_v that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a egyptian_a theology_n from_o whence_o the_o greekish_a and_o european_a be_v derive_v there_o be_v one_o intellectual_a deity_n one_o mind_n or_o wisdom_n which_o as_o it_o do_v produce_v all_o thing_n from_o itself_o so_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d contain_v and_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a and_o be_v itself_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o thing_n we_o think_v fit_a in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o observe_v how_o this_o point_n of_o the_o old_a egyptian_a theology_n viz._n god_n be_v all_o thing_n be_v every_o where_o insist_v upon_o throughout_o the_o hermaick_a or_o trismegistick_a write_n we_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o asclepian_a dialogue_n or_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translate_v into_o latin_a by_o apuleius_n in_o the_o entrance_n of_o which_o the_o writer_n have_v declare_v omnia_fw-la vnius_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o vnum_fw-la esse_fw-la omnia_fw-la that_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o one_o and_o that_o one_o be_v all_o thing_n he_o afterward_o add_v this_o explication_n thereof_o nun_n hoc_fw-la dixi_fw-la omnia_fw-la unum_n esse_fw-la &_o unum_n omnia_fw-la utpote_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o creatore_fw-la fuerint_fw-la omne_fw-la antequam_fw-la creâsset_fw-la omne_fw-la nec_fw-la immeritò_fw-la vnus_fw-la est_fw-la dictus_fw-la omnia_fw-la cujus_fw-la membra_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnia_fw-la huius_fw-la itaque_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la unus_n omnia_fw-la vel_fw-la ipse_fw-la est_fw-la creator_n omnium_fw-la in_fw-la tota_fw-la hac_fw-la disputatione_n curato_fw-la meminisse_fw-la have_v we_o not_o already_o declare_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v one_o and_o one_o all_o thing_n forasmuch_o as_o all_o thing_n exi_v in_o the_o creator_n before_o they_o be_v make_v neither_o be_v he_o improper_o say_v to_o be_v all_o thing_n who_o member_n all_o thing_n be_v be_v thou_o therefore_o mindful_a in_o this_o whole_a disputation_n of_o he_o who_o be_v one_o and_o all_o thing_n or_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o all._n and_o thus_o afterward_o do_v he_o declare_v that_o all_o create_a thing_n be_v in_o the_o deity_n before_o
wherefore_o the_o sense_n of_o empedocles_n his_o word_n here_o be_v this_o that_o the_o whole_a create_a world_n together_o with_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o it_o viz._n plant_n beast_n man_n and_o god_n be_v make_v from_o contention_n and_o friendship_n nevertheless_o since_o according_a to_o empedocles_n contention_n and_o friendship_n do_v themselves_o depend_v also_o upon_o one_o supreme_a deity_n which_o he_o with_o parmenides_n and_o xenophanes_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o very_a one_o the_o writer_n de_fw-fr mundo_fw-la might_n well_o conclude_v that_o according_a to_o empedocles_n all_o thing_n whatsoever_o and_o not_o only_a man_n but_o god_n be_v derive_v from_o one_o supreme_a deity_n and_o that_o this_o be_v indeed_o empedocles_n his_o sense_n appear_v plain_o from_o aristotle_n in_o his_o metaphysic_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n empedocles_n make_v contention_n to_o be_v a_o certain_a principle_n of_o corruption_n and_o generation_n nevertheless_o he_o seem_v to_o generate_v this_o contention_n itself_o also_o from_o the_o very_o one_o that_o be_v from_o the_o supreme_a deity_n for_o all_o thing_n according_a to_o he_o be_v from_o this_o contention_n god_n only_o except_v he_o write_v after_o this_o manner_n from_o which_o that_o be_v contention_n and_o friendship_n all_o the_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v plant_n beast_n man_n and_o god_n derive_v their_o original_a for_o empedocles_n it_o seem_v suppose_v that_o be_v it_o not_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d discord_n or_o contention_n all_o thing_n will_v be_v one_o so_o that_o according_a to_o he_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o procee_v from_o contention_n or_o discord_n together_o with_o a_o mixture_n of_o friendship_n save_v only_o the_o supreme_a god_n who_o have_v therefore_o no_o contention_n at_o all_o in_o he_o because_o he_o be_v essential_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unity_n itself_o and_o friendship_n from_o whence_o aristotle_n take_v occasion_n to_o quarrel_v with_o empedocles_n as_o if_o it_o will_v follow_v from_o his_o principle_n that_o the_o supreme_a and_o most_o happy_a god_n be_v the_o lest_o wise_a of_o all_o as_o be_v not_o able_a to_o know_v any_o thing_n beside_o himself_o or_o in_o the_o world_n without_o he_o 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n this_o therefore_o happen_v to_o empedocles_n that_o according_a to_o his_o principle_n the_o most_o happy_a god_n be_v the_o least_o wise_a of_o all_o other_o thing_n for_o he_o can_v know_v the_o element_n because_o he_o have_v no_o contention_n in_o he_o all_o knowledge_n be_v by_o that_o which_o be_v like_a himself_o write_v thus_o we_o know_v earth_n by_o earth_n water_n by_o water_n air_n by_o air_n and_o fire_n by_o fire_n friendship_n by_o friendship_n and_o contention_n by_o contention_n but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v empedocles_n here_o make_v the_o god_n themselves_o to_o be_v derive_v from_o contention_n and_o friendship_n the_o supreme_a deity_n or_o most_o happy_a god_n only_o except_v who_o have_v no_o contention_n in_o he_o and_o from_o who_o contention_n and_o friendship_n themselves_o be_v derive_v plain_o acknowledge_v both_o one_o unmake_v deity_n the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n under_o the_o name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o very_a one_o and_o many_o other_o inferior_a god_n generate_v or_o produce_v by_o he_o they_o be_v junior_n to_o contention_n or_o discord_n as_o this_o be_v also_o junior_a to_o unity_n the_o first_o and_o supreme_a deity_n which_o god_n of_o empedocles_n that_o be_v beget_v from_o contention_n as_o well_o as_o man_n and_o other_o thing_n be_v doubtless_o the_o star_n and_o demon_n moreover_o we_o may_v here_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o empedocles_n his_o doctrine_n the_o true_a original_a of_o all_o the_o evil_a both_o of_o humane_a soul_n and_o demon_n which_o he_o suppose_v alike_o lapsable_a be_v derive_v from_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d discord_n and_o contention_n 23._o that_o be_v necessary_o contain_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o together_o with_o the_o the_o ill_a use_n of_o their_o liberty_n both_o in_o this_o present_a and_o their_o pre-existent_a state_n so_o that_o empedocles_n here_o tread_v in_o the_o footstep_n of_o pythagoras_n who_o praise_n he_o thus_o loud_o sing_v forth_o in_o his_o poem_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 194._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n horum_fw-la de_fw-la numero_fw-la quidam_fw-la praestantia_fw-la norat_fw-la plurima_fw-la mentis_fw-la open_v amplas_fw-la sub_fw-la pectore_fw-la servans_fw-la omnia_fw-la vestigans_n sapientum_fw-la docta_fw-la reperta_fw-la etc._n etc._n xxii_o before_o we_o come_v to_o socrates_n and_o plato_n we_o shall_v here_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o other_o pythagorean_n and_o eminent_a philosopher_n who_o clear_o assert_v one_o supreme_a and_o universal_a numen_fw-la though_o doubtless_o acknowledge_v withal_o other_o inferior_a god_n 23._o philo_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr mundi_fw-la opificio_fw-la write_v of_o the_o hebdomad_a or_o septenary_n number_n and_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o the_o pythagorean_n it_o be_v call_v both_o a_o motherless_a and_o virgin_n number_n because_o it_o be_v the_o only_a number_n within_o the_o decad_n which_o be_v neither_o generate_v nor_o do_v itself_o generate_v tell_v we_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v make_v by_o they_o a_o symbol_n of_o the_o supreme_a deity_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o pythagorean_n liken_v this_o number_n to_o the_o prince_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o the_o supreme_a monarch_n of_o the_o universe_n as_o think_v it_o to_o bear_v a_o resemblance_n of_o his_o immutability_n which_o fancy_n of_o they_o be_v before_o take_v notice_n of_o by_o we_o however_o philo_n hereupon_o occasional_o cite_v this_o remarkable_a testimony_n of_o philolaus_n the_o pythagorean_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n say_v he_o be_v the_o prince_n and_o ruler_n over_o all_o always_o one_o stable_a immovable_a like_a to_o himself_o but_o unlike_a to_o every_o thing_n else_o to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v what_o in_o stobaeus_n be_v further_o record_v out_o of_o the_o same_o philolaus_n 44._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o world_n be_v from_o eternity_n and_o will_v remain_v to_o eternity_n one_o govern_v by_o one_o which_o be_v cognate_n and_o the_o best_a where_o notwithstanding_o he_o seem_v with_o ocellus_n to_o maintain_v the_o world_n pre-eternity_n and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wherefore_o say_v philolaus_n the_o world_n may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o eternal_a energy_n or_o effect_n of_o god_n and_o of_o successive_a generation_n jamblichus_n in_o his_o protreptic_o cite_v a_o passage_n out_o of_o archytas_n another_o pythagorean_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 20._o etc._n etc._n whosoever_o be_v able_a to_o reduce_v all_o kind_n of_o thing_n under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o principle_n this_o man_n seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v find_v out_o a_o excellent_a specula_fw-la or_o high_a station_n from_o whence_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o take_v a_o large_a view_n and_o prospect_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o he_o shall_v clear_o perceive_v that_o god_n be_v the_o beginning_n and_o end_v and_o middle_a of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v perform_v according_a to_o justice_n and_o right_a reason_n upon_o which_o word_n of_o archytas_n jamblichus_n thus_o gloss_v archytas_n here_o declare_v the_o end_n of_o all_o theological_a speculation_n to_o be_v this_o not_o to_o rest_v in_o many_o principle_n but_o to_o reduce_v all_o thing_n under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o head_n add_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o this_o knowledge_n of_o the_o first_o unity_n the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o contemplation_n moreover_o stobaeus_n cite_v this_o out_o of_o archytas_n his_o book_n of_o principle_n viz._n that_o beside_o matter_n and_o form_n 82._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n there_o be_v another_o more_o necessary_a cause_n which_o move_a bring_v the_o form_n to_o the_o matter_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o powerful_a cause_n which_o be_v fit_o call_v god_n so_o that_o there_o be_v three_o principle_n god_n matter_n and_o form_n god_n the_o artificer_n and_o mover_n and_o matter_n that_o which_o be_v move_v and_o form_v the_o art_n introduce_v into_o the_o matter_n in_o which_o same_o stobean_n excerption_n it_o also_o follow_v afterward_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o there_o must_v be_v something_o better_a than_o mind_n and_o that_o this_o thing_n better_o than_o mind_n be_v that_o which_o we_o proper_o call_v god_n 32._o ocellus_n also_o in_o the_o same_o stobaeus_n thus_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d life_n contain_v the_o body_n of_o animal_n the_o cause_n of_o which_o
platani_fw-la fidiculas_fw-la ferrent_fw-la numerosè_fw-la sonantes_fw-la idem_fw-la scilicet_fw-la censeres_fw-la in_o platanis_n inesse_fw-la musicam_fw-la cur_n igitur_fw-la mundus_fw-la non_fw-la animans_fw-la sapiensque_fw-la judicetur_fw-la cum_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la procreet_fw-la animantes_fw-la atque_fw-la sapientes_fw-la if_o from_o the_o olive-tree_n shall_v be_v produce_v pipe_n sound_v harmonious_o or_o from_o the_o plain-tree_n fiddle_n play_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n musical_o it_o will_v not_o at_o all_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o musical_a either_o skill_n or_o nature_n in_o those_o tree_n themselves_o why_o therefore_o shall_v not_o the_o world_n be_v conclude_v to_o be_v both_o animant_fw-la and_o wise_a or_o to_o have_v something_o in_o it_o which_o be_v so_o since_o it_o produce_v such_o being_n from_z itself_o and_o though_o perhaps_o some_o may_v think_v that_o of_o cotta_n here_o to_o have_v be_v a_o smart_n and_o witty_a repartie_n quaerit_fw-la socrates_n unde_fw-la animam_fw-la arripuerimus_fw-la si_fw-la nulla_fw-la fuerit_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la et_fw-la ego_fw-la quaero_fw-la unde_fw-la orationem_fw-la unde_fw-la numeros_fw-la unde_fw-la cantus_fw-la nisi_fw-la verò_fw-la loqui_fw-la solemn_a cum_fw-la luna_fw-la putemus_fw-la cum_fw-la propius_fw-la accesserit_fw-la aut_fw-la ad_fw-la harmoniam_fw-la canere_fw-la mundum_fw-la ut_fw-la pythagoras_n existimat_fw-la socrates_n demand_v whence_o we_o snatch_v soul_n life_n and_o reason_n if_o there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o world_n and_o i_o demand_v say_v he_o whence_o do_v we_o snatch_v speech_n music_n and_o number_n unless_o perhaps_o you_o will_v suppose_v the_o sun_n to_o confabulate_v with_o the_o moon_n when_o he_o approach_v near_o she_o in_o the_o syzygiae_fw-la or_o the_o world_n to_o sound_v harmonical_o as_o pythagoras_n conceit_v yet_o this_o how_o smart_a soever_o it_o may_v seem_v be_v real_o but_o a_o empty_a flash_n of_o academic_a wit_n without_o any_o solidity_n at_o all_o in_o it_o as_o shall_v be_v manifest_v afterward_o last_o the_o stoic_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n after_o this_o manner_n ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la pars_fw-la corporis_fw-la nostri_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la minor_fw-la quam_fw-la nosmetipsi_fw-la sumus_fw-la sic_fw-la mundum_fw-la vniversum_fw-la pluris_fw-la esse_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la partem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la vniversi_fw-la as_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o our_o body_n which_o be_v not_o inferior_a in_o perfection_n to_o ourselves_o so_o must_v the_o whole_a universe_n need_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v better_a and_o more_o perfect_a than_o any_o of_o the_o part_n thereof_o wherefore_o since_o it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v endue_v with_o life_n and_o understanding_n than_o to_o be_v devoid_a thereof_o and_o these_o be_v pure_a perfection_n they_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n in_o the_o part_n must_v needs_o be_v much_o more_o in_o the_o whole_a nullius_fw-la sensu_fw-la carentis_fw-la pars_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la sentiens_fw-la no_o part_n of_o that_o which_o be_v utter_o dead_a and_o stupid_a can_v have_v life_n and_o understanding_n in_o it_o and_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n for_o any_o man_n to_o suppose_v nihil_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la mundo_fw-la melius_fw-la esse_fw-la quam_fw-la se_fw-la that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n better_o than_o himself_o or_o than_o mankind_n which_o be_v but_o a_o part_n thereof_o now_o cotta_n here_o again_o exercise_v his_o jeer_a academic_a wit_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o before_o hoc_fw-la si_fw-la placet_fw-la jam_fw-la efficies_n ut_fw-la mundus_fw-la optimè_fw-la librum_fw-la legere_fw-la videatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n isto_fw-la modo_fw-la etiam_fw-la disertus_fw-la mathematicus_fw-la musicus_n omni_fw-la denique_fw-la doctrina_fw-la refertus_fw-la postremo_fw-la philosophus_fw-la erit_fw-la mundus_fw-la by_o this_o same_o argument_n you_o may_v as_o well_o prove_v that_o the_o world_n be_v also_o booklearned_n a_o orator_n a_o mathematician_n a_o musician_n and_o last_o of_o all_o a_o philosopher_n but_o neither_o this_o objection_n of_o he_o nor_o that_o former_a have_v any_o firmitude_n at_o all_o in_o they_o because_o though_o a_o effect_n can_v be_v better_a or_o more_o perfect_a than_o its_o cause_n nor_o a_o part_n than_o the_o whole_a and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o there_o be_v of_o pure_a perfection_n in_o any_o effect_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v more_o in_o the_o cause_n yet_o as_o to_o those_o thing_n there_o mention_v by_o cotta_n which_o have_v all_o a_o plain_a mixture_n of_o imperfection_n in_o they_o as_o they_o can_v not_o therefore_o formal_o exist_v in_o that_o which_o be_v absolute_o perfect_a so_o be_v it_o sufficient_a that_o they_o be_v all_o eminent_o and_o vertuael_o contain_v therein_o by_o such_o argumentation_n as_o these_o beside_o that_o take_v from_o the_o topick_n of_o prescience_n and_o divination_n do_v the_o ancient_a stoic_n endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n or_o a_o universal_a numen_fw-la the_o maker_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a plastic_a or_o methodical_a and_o senseless_a but_o a_o conscious_a and_o perfect_o intellectual_a nature_n so_o that_o the_o world_n to_o they_o be_v neither_o a_o mere_a heap_n and_o congery_n of_o dead_a and_o stupid_a matter_n fortuitous_o compact_v together_o nor_o yet_o a_o huge_a plant_n or_o vegetable_a that_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o spermatick_a principle_n only_o but_o a_o animal_n inform_v and_o enliven_v by_o a_o intellectual_a soul_n and_o though_o be_v corporealist_n they_o sometime_o call_v the_o whole_a world_n itself_o or_o mundane_a animal_n god_n and_o sometime_o the_o fiery_a principle_n in_o it_o as_o intellectual_a and_o the_o hegemonick_a of_o the_o mundane_a soul_n yet_o be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o stoic_n proper_o not_o the_o very_a matter_n itself_o but_o that_o great_a soul_n mind_n and_o understanding_n or_o in_o seneca_n language_n that_o ratio_fw-la incorporalis_fw-la that_o rule_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o stoical_a god_n be_v also_o call_v as_o well_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d good_a as_o mind_n as_o that_o which_o be_v a_o most_o moral_a benign_a and_o benificent_a be_v according_a to_o that_o excellent_a cleanthean_a description_n of_o he_o in_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n but_o this_o maker_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v most_o common_o name_v by_o the_o stoic_n zeus_n and_o zenocia_n or_o jupiter_n some_o of_o they_o conclude_v that_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o zeus_n or_o independent_a deity_n because_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o one_o animal_n govern_v by_o one_o soul_n and_o other_o of_o they_o endeavour_v on_o the_o contrary_a to_o prove_v the_o unity_n and_o singularity_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o oneliness_n of_o this_o zeus_n or_o the_o supreme_a deity_n suppose_v and_o take_v for_o grant_v and_o because_o there_o be_v but_o one_o fate_n and_o providence_n which_o latter_a consequence_n plutarch_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n allow_v of_o 425._o he_o write_v thus_o concern_v it_o where_o he_o plead_v for_o a_o plurality_n of_o world_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v it_o at_o all_o considerable_a what_o the_o stoic_n here_o object_n against_o a_o plurality_n of_o world_n they_o demand_v how_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o fate_n and_o one_o providence_n and_o one_o jove_n or_o independent_a deity_n be_v there_o many_o world_n for_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o that_o there_o must_v be_v more_o zen_n or_o jove_n than_o one_o if_o there_o be_v more_o world_n and_o why_o may_v not_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n of_o this_o universe_n call_v by_o we_o the_o lord_n and_o father_n of_o all_o be_v the_o first_o prince_n and_o high_a governor_n in_o all_o those_o world_n or_o what_o hinder_v but_o that_o a_o multitude_n of_o world_n may_v be_v all_o subject_a to_o the_o fate_n and_o providence_n of_o one_o jupiter_n or_o supreme_a god_n himself_o inspect_v and_o order_v they_o every_o one_o and_o impart_v principle_n and_o spermatick_a reason_n to_o they_o according_a to_o which_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o may_v be_v govern_v and_o dispose_v for_o can_v many_o distinct_a person_n in_o a_o army_n or_o chorus_n be_v reduce_v into_o one_o body_n or_o polity_n and_o can_v not_o ten_o or_o fifty_o or_o a_o hundred_o world_n in_o the_o universe_n be_v all_o govern_v by_o one_o reason_n and_o be_v order_v together_o in_o reference_n to_o one_o principle_n in_o which_o place_n these_o two_o thing_n be_v plain_o contain_v first_o that_o the_o stoic_n unquestionable_o assert_v one_o supreme_a deity_n or_o universal_a monarch_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o second_o that_o plutarch_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v any_o entertainment_n to_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n that_o he_o conclude_v though_o there_o be_v ten_o or_o fifty_o or_o a_o hundred_o world_n
call_v god_n now_o the_o forementioned_a argumentation_n of_o st._n austin_n though_o it_o be_v good_a against_o the_o pagan_n civil_a theology_n yet_o their_o other_o arcane_a and_o natural_a theology_n be_v unconcern_v in_o it_o that_o plain_o acknowledge_v all_o to_o be_v but_o one_o god_n which_o for_o certain_a reason_n be_v worship_v under_o several_a name_n and_o with_o different_a rite_n wherefore_o janus_n and_o jupiter_n be_v real_o but_o different_a name_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o supreme_a god_n that_o conjecture_n of_o salmasius_n seem_v very_o probable_a that_o the_o roman_n derive_v their_o janus_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o aetolian_a jupiter_n genius_n be_v also_o another_o of_o the_o twenty_o select_a roman_a god_n &_o that_o this_o be_v likewise_o a_o universal_a numen_fw-la contain_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o thing_n appear_v from_o this_o of_o festus_n genium_fw-la appellabant_fw-la deum_fw-la qui_fw-la vim_o obtineret_fw-la rerum_fw-la omnium_fw-la genendarum_fw-la they_o call_v that_o god_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o beget_v or_o produce_v all_o thing_n genius_n ●3_n and_o st._n austin_n also_o plain_o declare_v genius_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o jupiter_n that_o be_v to_o be_v but_o another_o name_n for_o the_o one_o supreme_a god_n cum_fw-la alio_fw-la loco_fw-la varro_n dicit_fw-la genium_fw-la esse_fw-la vniuscujusque_fw-la animum_fw-la rationalem_fw-la talem_fw-la autem_fw-la mundi_fw-la animum_fw-la deum_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la idem_fw-la utique_fw-la revocat_fw-la ut_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la genius_fw-la ipse_fw-la mundi_fw-la animus_fw-la esse_fw-la credatur_fw-la hic_fw-la est_fw-la igitur_fw-la quem_fw-la appellant_n jupiter_fw-la and_o afterward_o restat_fw-la ut_fw-la eum_fw-la singulariter_fw-la &_o excellent_a dicant_fw-la deum_fw-la genium_fw-la quem_fw-la dicunt_fw-la mundi_fw-la animum_fw-la ac_fw-la per_fw-la hoc_fw-la jupiter_fw-la when_o varro_n elsewhere_o call_v the_o rational_a mind_n of_o every_o one_o a_o genius_n and_o affirm_v such_o a_o mind_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v god_n he_o plain_o impli_v that_o god_n be_v the_o universal_a genius_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o genius_n and_o jupiter_n be_v the_o same_o and_o though_o genius_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o the_o mind_n of_o every_o man_n yet_o the_o god_n genius_n speak_v of_o by_o way_n of_o excellency_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o jupiter_n again_o that_o chronos_n or_o saturn_n be_v no_o particular_a deity_n but_o the_o universal_a numen_fw-la of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v plain_o affirm_v by_o dionysius_n of_o halicarnassus_n where_o commend_v the_o fertility_n of_o italy_n he_o write_v thus_o steph._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o the_o ancient_n think_v this_o country_n to_o be_v sacred_a to_o saturn_n they_o suppose_v this_o god_n to_o be_v the_o giver_n and_o perfect_a of_o all_o happiness_n to_o man_n whether_o we_o ought_v to_o call_v he_o chronos_n as_o the_o greek_n will_v have_v it_o or_o cronos_n as_o the_o roman_n he_o be_v either_o way_n such_o a_o god_n as_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o word_n saturn_n be_v hetrurian_a which_o language_n be_v original_o oriental_a and_o be_v derive_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v hide_v so_o that_o by_o saturn_n be_v mean_v that_o hide_a principle_n of_o the_o universe_n which_o contain_v all_o thing_n and_o he_o be_v therefore_o call_v by_o the_o roman_n deus_fw-la latius_fw-la the_o hide_a god_n as_o the_o wife_n of_o saturn_n in_o the_o pontifical_a book_n be_v latia_n saturni_n and_o the_o land_n itself_o which_o in_o the_o hetrurian_a language_n be_v saturnia_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a latium_n from_o whence_o the_o inhabitant_n be_v call_v latin_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o hidden_n god_n moreover_o that_o saturn_n can_v not_o be_v inferior_a to_o jupiter_n according_a to_o the_o fabulous_a theology_n be_v plain_a from_o hence_o because_o he_o be_v therein_o say_v to_o have_v be_v his_o father_n but_o then_o the_o question_n will_v be_v how_o saturn_n and_o jupiter_n can_v be_v both_o of_o they_o one_o and_o the_o same_o universal_a numen_fw-la to_o which_o there_o be_v several_a answer_n for_o first_o plato_n who_o propound_v this_o difficulty_n in_o his_o craetylus_n solve_v it_o thus_o that_o by_o jupiter_n here_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n which_o according_a to_o his_o theology_n be_v derive_v from_o a_o perfect_a and_o eternal_a mind_n or_o intellect_n which_o chronos_n be_v interpret_v to_o be_v as_o chronos_n also_o depend_v upon_o uranus_n or_o coelus_n the_o supreme_a heavenly_a god_n or_o first_o original_a deity_n so_o that_o plato_n here_o find_v his_o trinity_n of_o divine_a hypostasis_n archical_a and_o universal_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o uranus_n chronos_n and_o zeus_n or_o coelus_n saturn_n and_o jupiter_n other_o conceive_v that_o according_a to_o the_o plain_a and_o more_o simple_a sense_n of_o hesiod_n theogonia_n that_o jupiter_n who_o together_o with_o neptune_n and_o pluto_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o son_n of_o saturn_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a deity_n nor_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o but_o only_o the_o aether_n as_o neptune_n be_v the_o sea_n and_o pluto_n the_o earth_n all_o which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v beget_v by_o chronos_n or_o saturn_n the_o son_n of_o uranus_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v by_o the_o hide_a virtue_n of_o the_o supreme_a heavenly_a god_n but_o the_o writer_n de_fw-fr mundo_fw-la though_o make_v jupiter_n to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o supreme_a god_n yet_o take_v chronos_n to_o signify_v immensity_n of_o duration_n or_o eternity_n will_v have_v jupiter_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o chronos_n in_o this_o sense_n because_o he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d continue_v from_o one_o eternity_n to_o another_o so_o that_o chronos_n and_o zeus_n be_v to_o he_o in_o a_o manner_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o no_o ingenuous_a and_o learned_a pagan_a who_o well_o understand_v the_o natural_a theology_n will_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o best_a answer_n of_o all_o to_o this_o difficulty_n be_v this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o coherent_a sense_n to_o be_v make_v of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o fabulous_a theology_n st._n austin_n from_o varro_n give_v we_o this_o account_n of_o saturn_n that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o produce_v from_o himself_o continual_o the_o hide_a seed_n and_o form_n of_o thing_n and_o reduce_v or_o receive_v they_o again_o into_o himself_o which_o some_o think_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o that_o fable_n concern_v saturn_n his_o devour_v his_o male-children_n because_o the_o form_n of_o these_o corporeal_a thing_n be_v perpetual_o destroy_v whilst_o the_o material_a part_n signify_v by_o the_o female_n still_o remain_v however_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o be_v but_o another_o pagan_a adumbration_n of_o the_o deity_n that_o be_v also_o sometime_o thus_o define_v by_o they_o 12._o as_o st._n austin_n likewise_o enform_v we_o sinus_n quidam_fw-la naturae_fw-la in_o seipso_fw-la continens_fw-la omne_fw-la a_o certain_a bosom_n or_o deep_a hollow_a and_o inward_a recess_n of_o nature_n which_o contain_v within_o itself_o all_o thing_n and_o st._n austin_n himself_o conclude_v that_o according_a to_o this_o varronian_a notion_n of_o saturn_n likewise_o the_o pagan_n jupiter_n and_o saturn_n be_v real_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o numen_fw-la de_n civ_o d._n l._n 7._o c._n 13._o wherefore_o we_o may_v with_o good_a reason_n affirm_v that_o saturn_n be_v another_o name_n for_o the_o supreme_a god_n among_o the_o pagan_n it_o signify_v that_o secret_a and_o hide_a power_n which_o comprehend_v pervade_v and_o support_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o which_o produce_v the_o seed_n or_o seminal_a principle_n and_o form_n of_o all_o thing_n from_o itself_o as_o also_o uranus_n or_o coelus_n jupiter_n be_v plain_o yet_o another_o name_n for_o the_o same_o supreme_a deity_n or_o the_o first_o divine_a hypostasis_fw-la comprehend_v the_o whole_a in_o the_o next_o place_n though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o minerva_n be_v sometime_o take_v for_o a_o particular_a god_n or_o for_o god_n according_a to_o a_o particular_a manifestation_n of_o he_o in_o the_o aether_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v afterward_o yet_o be_v it_o often_o take_v also_o for_o the_o supreme_a god_n according_a to_o his_o most_o general_a notion_n or_o as_o a_o universal_a numen_fw-la diffuse_v himself_o through_o all_o thing_n thus_o have_v it_o be_v already_o prove_v that_o neith_n or_o neithas_n be_v the_o same_o among_o the_o egyptian_n that_o athena_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o minerva_n among_o the_o latin_n which_o that_o it_o be_v a_o universal_a numen_fw-la appear_v from_o that_o
it_o be_v perpetual_o to_o personate_v thing_n and_o nature_n but_o the_o philosophic_a theology_n proper_o so_o call_v which_o according_a to_o varro_n be_v that_o de_fw-fr qua_fw-la multos_fw-la libros_fw-la philosophi_fw-la reliquerunt_fw-la as_o it_o admit_v none_o but_o animal_n god_n and_o such_o as_o real_o exi_v in_o nature_n which_o therefore_o be_v call_v natural_a namely_o one_o supreme_a universal_a numen_fw-la a_o perfect_a soul_n or_o mind_n comprehend_v all_o and_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d other_o inferior_a understanding_n being_n his_n minister_n create_v by_o he_o such_o as_o star_n and_o demon_n so_o be_v all_o those_o personate_a god_n or_o nature_n of_o thing_n deify_v in_o the_o arcane_a theology_n interpret_v agreeable_o thereunto_o st._n austin_n often_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o pagan_n thus_o mingle_v and_o as_o it_o be_v incorporate_n physiology_n with_o their_o theology_n he_o just_o condemn_v the_o same_o as_o in_o his_o 49._o epistle_n neque_fw-la illinc_fw-la excusant_fw-la impii_fw-la sva_fw-la sacrilega_fw-la sacra_fw-la &_o simulachra_fw-la quòd_fw-la eleganter_fw-la interpretantur_fw-la quid_fw-la quaeque_fw-la significent_fw-la omnis_fw-la quip_n illa_fw-la interpretatio_fw-la ad_fw-la creaturam_fw-la refertur_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la creatorem_fw-la cvi_fw-la uni_fw-la debetur_fw-la servitus_fw-la religionis_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la uno_fw-la nomine_fw-la latria_n graecè_fw-la appellatur_fw-la neither_o do_v the_o pagan_n sufficient_o excuse_v their_o sacrilegious_a rite_n and_o image_n from_o hence_o because_o they_o elegant_o and_o ingenious_o interpret_v what_o each_o of_o those_o thing_n signify_v for_o this_o interpretation_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o not_o to_o the_o creator_n to_o who_o alone_o belong_v religious_a worship_n that_o which_o by_o the_o greek_n be_v call_v latria_n and_o again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr civ_o d._n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o atenim_fw-la habent_fw-la ista_fw-la physiologicas_fw-la quasdam_fw-la sicut_fw-la aiunt_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la naturalium_fw-la rationum_fw-la interpretationes_fw-la quasi_fw-la verò_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la disputatione_n physiologiam_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la &_o non_fw-la theologiam_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la rationem_fw-la naturae_fw-la &_o non_fw-fr dei._n quamvis_fw-la enim_fw-la qui_fw-la verus_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-fr opinion_n sed_fw-la natura_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la omnis_fw-la natura_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la but_o the_o pagan_n pretend_v that_o these_o thing_n have_v certain_a physiological_a interpretation_n or_o according_a to_o natural_a reason_n as_o if_o in_o this_o disputation_n we_o seek_v for_o physiology_n and_o not_o theology_n or_o the_o reason_n of_o nature_n and_o not_o of_o god_n for_o although_o the_o true_a god_n be_v not_o in_o opinion_n only_o but_o in_o nature_n god_n yet_o be_v not_o every_o nature_n god_n but_o certain_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a ground_n of_o this_o practice_n of_o they_o thus_o to_o theologize_v physiology_n and_o deify_v in_o one_o sense_n or_o other_o all_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o have_v be_v already_o intimate_v their_o suppose_v god_n to_o be_v not_o only_o diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n but_o also_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o thing_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v in_o all_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n and_o part_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o these_o personate_a god_n of_o the_o pagan_n or_o those_o thing_n of_o nature_n deify_v by_o they_o and_o call_v god_n and_o goddess_n 345._o be_v for_o all_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n account_v by_o the_o intelligent_a among_o they_o true_a and_o proper_a go_n thus_o cotta_n in_o cicero_n cum_fw-la fruges_fw-la cererem_fw-la vinum_fw-la liberum_fw-la dicimus_fw-la genere_fw-la nos_fw-la quidem_fw-la sermonis_fw-la utimur_fw-la usitato_fw-la sed_fw-la ecquem_fw-la tam_fw-la amentem_fw-la esse_fw-la putas_fw-la qui_fw-la illud_fw-la quo_fw-la vescatur_fw-la deum_fw-la esse_fw-la credat_fw-la though_o it_o be_v very_o common_a and_o familiar_a language_n among_o we_o to_o call_v corn_n ceres_n and_o wine_n bacchus_n yet_o who_o can_v think_v any_o one_o to_o be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o take_v that_o to_o be_v real_o a_o god_n which_o he_o feed_v upon_o the_o pagan_n real_o account_v that_o only_a for_o a_o god_n by_o the_o worship_a and_o invoke_v whereof_o they_o may_v reasonable_o expect_v benefit_n to_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o nothing_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o a_o god_n to_o they_o but_o what_o be_v both_o substantial_a and_o also_o animant_fw-la and_o intellectual_a l●g_n for_o plato_n write_v that_o the_o atheistick_a wit_n of_o his_o time_n therefore_o conclude_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o star_n not_o to_o be_v god_n because_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o earth_n and_o stone_n or_o a_o certain_a fiery_a matter_n devoid_a of_o all_o understanding_n and_o sense_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unable_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o humane_a affair_n and_o aristotle_n affirm_v concern_v the_o god_n in_o general_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n that_o all_o man_n conceive_v they_o to_o live_v and_o consequent_o to_o act_n since_o they_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o sleep_v perpetual_o as_o endymion_n do_v the_o pagan_n universal_o conceive_v the_o god_n to_o be_v happy_a animal_n and_o aristotle_n there_o conclude_v the_o happiness_n of_o they_o all_o to_o consist_v in_o contemplation_n lucretius_n himself_o will_v not_o debar_v man_n of_o that_o language_n than_o vulgar_o receive_v among_o the_o pagan_n of_o call_v the_o sea_n neptune_n corn_n ceres_n wine_n bacchus_n and_o the_o earth_n the_o mother_n of_o the_o god_n too_o provide_v that_o they_o do_v not_o think_v any_o of_o these_o for_o all_o that_o to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o god_n lamb._n hîc_fw-la siquis_fw-la mare_fw-la neptunum_n cereremque_fw-la vocare_fw-la constituit_fw-la fruges_fw-la &_o bacchi_fw-la nomine_fw-la abuti_fw-la mavolt_n quam_fw-la laticis_fw-la proprium_fw-la proffer_v vocamen_fw-la concedamus_fw-la ut_fw-la hic_fw-la terrarum_fw-la dictitet_fw-la orbem_fw-la esse_fw-la deum_fw-la matrem_fw-la dum_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la re_fw-la tamen_fw-la apse_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o real_o a_o goddess_n be_v thus_o give_v by_o he_o terra_fw-la quidem_fw-la vero_fw-la caret_fw-la omni_fw-la tempore_fw-la sensu._n because_o it_o be_v constant_o devoid_a of_o all_o manner_n of_o sense_n 220._o thus_o balbus_n in_o cicero_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o first_o thing_n include_v in_o the_o notion_n or_o idea_n of_o a_o god_n be_v this_o ut_fw-la sit_fw-la animans_fw-la that_o it_o be_v animant_fw-la or_o endue_v with_o life_n sense_n and_o understanding_n and_o he_o conceive_v the_o star_n to_o be_v undoubted_o such_o therefore_o conclude_v they_o to_o be_v go_n quoniam_fw-la tenuissimus_fw-la est_fw-la aether_n &_o semper_fw-la agitatur_fw-la &_o viget_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la animal_n in_o eo_fw-la gignatur_fw-la idem_fw-la quoque_fw-la sensu_fw-la acerrimo_fw-la esse_fw-la quare_fw-la ●um_fw-la in_o aethere_fw-la astra_fw-la gignantur_fw-la consentaneum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la sensum_fw-la inesse_fw-la &_o intelligentiam_fw-la exit_fw-la quo_fw-la efficitur_fw-la in_o deorum_fw-la numero_fw-la astra_fw-la esse_fw-la ducenda_fw-la because_o the_o aether_n be_v most_o subtle_a and_o in_o continual_a agitation_n that_o animal_n which_o be_v beget_v in_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o quick_a and_o sharp_a sense_n wherefore_o since_o the_o star_n be_v beget_v in_o the_o aether_n it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o think_v they_o to_o have_v sense_n and_o understanding_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o number_n of_o go_n and_o cotta_n in_o the_o three_o book_n 241_o affirm_v that_o all_o man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v the_o star_n to_o be_v god_n that_o multi_fw-la ne_fw-la animantes_fw-la quidem_fw-la esse_fw-la concedant_fw-la many_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o admit_v they_o to_o be_v animal_n plain_o intimate_v that_o unless_o they_o be_v animate_v 377._o they_o can_v not_o possible_o by_o go_n last_o plutarch_n for_o this_o very_a reason_n absolute_o condemn_v that_o whole_a practice_n of_o give_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o goddess_n to_o inanimate_a thing_n as_o absurd_a impious_a and_o atheistical_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o who_o give_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o senseless_a and_o inanimate_a nature_n and_o thing_n and_o such_o as_o be_v destroy_v by_o man_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o beget_v most_o wicked_a and_o atheistical_a opinion_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n since_o it_o can_v be_v conceive_v how_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v god_n for_o nothing_o that_o be_v inanimate_a be_v a_o god_n and_o now_o we_o have_v very_o good_a reason_n to_o conclude_v that_o the_o distinction_n or_o division_n of_o pagan_a god_n use_v by_o some_o into_o animal_n and_o natural_a by_o natural_a be_v mean_v inanimate_a be_v utter_o to_o be_v reject_v if_o we_o speak_v of_o their_o true_a and_o proper_a god_n since_o nothing_o be_v such_o to_o the_o
be_v also_o the_o light_n itself_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o darkness_n can_v comprehend_v this_o light_n nor_o insinuate_v itself_o with_o it_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v such_o as_o can_v never_o receive_v pollution_n it_o be_v substantial_o and_o essential_o holy_a but_o whatsoever_o other_o nature_n be_v holy_a it_o be_v only_o such_o in_o way_n of_o participation_n and_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o this_o holy_a spirit_n so_o that_o holiness_n be_v not_o its_o very_a nature_n and_o essence_n but_o only_o a_o accident_n to_o it_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v but_o accidental_a may_v fail_v all_o create_v being_n therefore_o have_v but_o accidental_a goodness_n and_o wisdom_n may_v degenerate_a and_o fall_v into_o evil_n and_o folly_n which_o of_o origen_n be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o rank_n of_o being_n as_o autogaathotetes_n essential_a goodness_n there_o be_v only_o one_o be_v essential_o good_a or_o goodness_n itself_o nor_o no_o such_o particular_a create_a being_n exi_a in_o nature_n as_o the_o platonist_n call_v noes_n neither_o that_o be_v mind_n or_o intellect_n immovable_a perfect_o and_o essential_o wise_a or_o wisdom_n itself_o who_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o essence_n be_v their_o operation_n and_o who_o consequent_o have_v no_o flux_n at_o all_o in_o they_o nor_o successive_a action_n only_o the_o eternal_a word_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v such_o who_o also_o be_v absolute_o ununitable_a to_o any_o body_n it_o be_v true_a that_o origen_n do_v sometime_o make_v mention_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mind_n or_o intellect_n but_o it_o be_v in_o another_o sense_n he_o call_v all_o soul_n as_o first_o create_v by_o god_n and_o before_o their_o lapse_n by_o that_o name_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v though_o some_o of_o the_o platonist_n talk_v much_o of_o their_o noes_n yet_o be_v there_o nothing_o answerable_a to_o that_o name_n according_a to_o their_o notion_n of_o they_o but_o the_o only_a noes_n real_o exist_v in_o nature_n be_v vnfallen_a but_o peccable_a soul_n he_o often_o conclude_v that_o the_o high_a rank_n of_o create_a being_n be_v indeed_o no_o better_o than_o those_o which_o the_o platonist_n common_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o soul_n by_o which_o soul_n he_o understand_v first_o of_o all_o being_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n selfmoveable_a and_o active_a whereas_o the_o noes_n of_o the_o platonist_n be_v altogether_o immovable_a and_o above_o action_n and_o then_o again_o such_o being_n or_o spirit_n incorporeal_a as_o exist_v not_o abstract_o and_o separately_z from_o all_o matter_n as_o the_o noes_n of_o the_o platonist_n be_v suppose_v to_o do_v but_o be_v vital_o vnitable_a to_o body_n so_o as_o together_o with_o those_o body_n to_o compound_v and_o make_v up_o one_o animal_n thus_o i_o say_v origen_n conceive_v even_o of_o the_o high_a angelical_a and_o arch-angelica_n order_n that_o they_o be_v eall_a of_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soul_n unite_v to_o body_n but_o such_o as_o be_v pure_a subtle_a and_o ethereal_a however_o he_o suppose_v it_o not_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o sink_v down_o into_o body_n more_o gross_a and_o feculent_a and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a christian_a writer_n concur_v with_o origen_n herein_o that_o the_o high_a create_a spirit_n be_v no_o naked_a and_o abstract_a mind_n but_o soul_n clothe_v with_o some_o corporeal_a indument_n last_o origen_n soul_n be_v also_o suppose_v to_o be_v all_o of_o they_o endow_v with_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la or_o freewill_n and_o consequent_o to_o be_v self-improvable_a and_o self-impairable_a and_o no_o particular_a create_v spirit_n to_o be_v absolute_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n impeccable_a but_o lapsible_a into_o vicious_a habit_n whereas_o as_o the_o platonic_a noes_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v such_o being_n as_o can_v never_o fall_v nor_o degenerate_a and_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o christian_a writer_n seem_v to_o have_v consent_v or_o conspire_v with_o origen_n in_o this_o also_o they_o suppose_v he_o who_o be_v now_o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n to_o have_v be_v once_o a_o angel_n of_o the_o high_a order_n thus_o do_v st._n jerome_n determine_v solus_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la quem_fw-la peccatum_fw-la non_fw-la cadit_fw-la cetera_fw-la cùm_fw-la sint_fw-la liberi_fw-la arbitrii_fw-la possunt_fw-la in_o utramque_fw-la partem_fw-la svam_fw-la flectere_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la god_n be_v the_o only_o be_v that_o be_v absolute_o uncapable_a of_o sin_n but_o all_o other_o being_n have_v free_a will_n in_o they_o may_v possible_o turn_v their_o will_n to_o either_o way_n that_o be_v to_o evil_a as_o well_o as_o to_o good_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o god_n in_o a_o sense_n of_o perfection_n be_v the_o most_o free_a agent_n of_o all_o neither_o be_v contingent_a liberty_n universal_o deny_v to_o he_o but_o here_o it_o be_v make_v the_o only_a privilege_n of_o god_n that_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n to_o be_v devoid_a of_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la namely_o as_o it_o impli_v imperfection_n that_o be_v peccability_n and_o lapsibility_n in_o it_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o of_o the_o platonic_a philosopher_n suppose_v that_o even_o in_o that_o rank_n of_o being_n call_v by_o they_o soul_n though_o they_o be_v not_o essential_o immutable_a but_o all_o selfmoveable_a and_o active_a yet_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o of_o so_o high_a a_o pitch_n and_o elevation_n as_o that_o they_o can_v never_o degenerate_a nor_o sink_v down_o into_o vicious_a habit_n thus_o simplicius_n for_o one_o 13._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o first_o and_o high_a of_o soul_n which_o be_v immediate_o produce_v from_o what_o be_v essential_o good_a although_o they_o have_v some_o abatement_n in_o they_o they_o be_v not_o goodness_n essential_o but_o desirous_a of_o good_a nevertheless_o be_v they_o so_o near_o a_o kin_n to_o that_o high_a good_a of_o all_o as_o that_o they_o do_v natural_o and_o indivulsive_o cleave_v to_o the_o same_o and_o have_v their_o volition_n always_o uniform_o direct_v towards_o it_o they_o never_o decline_v to_o the_o worse_a insomuch_o that_o if_o proaeresis_fw-la be_v take_v for_o the_o choose_v of_o one_o thing_n before_o another_o perhaps_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o proaeresis_fw-la to_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o unless_o one_o shall_v call_v the_o choose_n of_o the_o first_o good_n proaeresis_fw-la by_o these_o high_a soul_n simplicius_n must_v needs_o understand_v either_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n or_o else_o those_o of_o the_o superior_a order_n of_o demoniac_a or_o angelic_a being_n where_o though_o he_o make_v a_o question_n whether_o proaeresis_fw-la or_o deliberation_n belong_v to_o they_o yet_o do_v he_o plain_o imply_v that_o they_o have_v none_o at_o all_o of_o that_o lubricous_a liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la or_o freewill_n belong_v to_o they_o which_o will_v make_v they_o capable_a of_o vice_n and_o immorality_n as_o well_o as_o virtue_n but_o whatever_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o this_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o necessity_n at_o all_o for_o admit_v that_o assertion_n of_o origen_n that_o all_o rational_a soul_n whatsoever_o even_o those_o of_o man_n and_o those_o of_o the_o high_a angelical_a order_n be_v universal_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o have_v no_o fundamental_a or_o essential_a difference_n in_o their_o constitution_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v now_o betwixt_o they_o do_v arise_v only_o from_o the_o difference_n of_o their_o demeanour_n or_o use_v of_o that_o power_n and_o liberty_n which_o they_o all_o alike_o once_o have_v so_o that_o throne_n and_o dominion_n and_o principality_n and_o power_n be_v all_o make_v such_o by_o their_o merit_n and_o humane_a soul_n though_o now_o sink_v so_o low_a yet_o be_v not_o absolute_o uncapable_a of_o commence_v angel_n or_o ascend_v to_o those_o high_a altitude_n as_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a according_a to_o he_o neither_o but_o that_o the_o high_a angel_n also_o the_o seraphim_n and_o cherubin_n may_v in_o length_n of_o time_n not_o only_o degenerate_a into_o devil_n but_o also_o sink_v down_o into_o humane_a body_n his_o reason_n for_o which_o monstrous_a paradox_n be_v only_o this_o that_o the_o divine_a justice_n can_v otherwise_o well_o be_v salve_v but_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o acepter_n of_o person_n shall_v he_o have_v arbitrary_o make_v such_o vast_a difference_n among_o intellectual_a being_n which_o ground_n he_o also_o extend_v so_o far_o as_o to_o the_o humane_a soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o as_o be_v not_o partial_o appoint_v to_o that_o transcendent_a
dignity_n of_o its_o hypostatick_a union_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o most_o faithful_a adherence_n to_o the_o divine_a word_n and_o wisdom_n in_o a_o pre-existent_a state_n beyond_o all_o other_o soul_n which_o he_o endeavour_v thus_o to_o prove_v from_o the_o scripture_n 6._o quòd_fw-la dilectionis_fw-la perfectio_fw-la &_o affectus_fw-la sinceritas_fw-la ei_fw-la inseparabilem_fw-la cum_fw-la deo_fw-la fecerit_fw-la vnitatem_fw-la ità_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la fortuita_fw-la fuerit_fw-la aut_fw-la cum_fw-la personae_fw-la acceptione_n animae_fw-la ejus_fw-la assumptio_fw-la sed_fw-la virtutum_fw-la suarum_fw-la sibi_fw-la merito_fw-la delata_fw-la audi_fw-la ad_fw-la eum_fw-la prophetam_fw-la dicentem_fw-la dilexisti_fw-la justitiam_fw-la &_o odisti_fw-la iniquitatem_fw-la proptereà_fw-la unxit_fw-la te_fw-la deus_fw-la deus_fw-la tuus_fw-la oleo_fw-la laetitiae_fw-la prae_fw-la participibus_fw-la tuis_fw-la dilectionis_fw-la ergo_fw-la merito_fw-la ungitur_fw-la oleo_n laetitiae_fw-la anima_fw-la christi_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la vnum_fw-la efficitur_fw-la vngè_a namque_fw-la oleo_fw-la laetitiae_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la quam_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la repleri_fw-la prae_fw-la participibus_fw-la autem_fw-la dixit_fw-la quia_fw-la n●n_fw-la gratia_n spiritus_fw-la sicut_fw-la prophetis_fw-la ei_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsius_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la substantialis_fw-la inerat_fw-la plenitudo_fw-la that_o the_o perfection_n of_o love_n and_o sincerity_n of_o divine_a affection_n procure_v to_o this_o soul_n its_o inseparable_a union_n with_o the_o godhead_n so_o that_o the_o assumption_n of_o it_o be_v neither_o fortuitous_a nor_o partial_a or_o with_o prosopolepsie_n the_o acception_n of_o person_n but_o bestow_v upon_o it_o just_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o its_o virtue_n hear_v say_v he_o the_o prophet_n thus_o declare_v to_o he_o thou_o have_v love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_a iniquity_n therefore_o have_v god_n even_o thy_o god_n anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n the_o soul_n of_o christ_n therefore_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n or_o make_v one_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o love_n and_o faithful_a adherence_n to_o god_n and_o no_o otherwise_o for_o to_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n here_o proper_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v thus_o anoint_v above_o his_o fellow_n this_o intimate_v that_o he_o have_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bestow_v upon_o he_o only_o as_o the_o prophet_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n have_v but_o that_o the_o substantial_a fullness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o he_o but_o this_o reason_n of_o origen_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o weak_a because_o if_o there_o be_v a_o rank_n of_o soul_n below_o humane_a specifical_o differ_v from_o the_o same_o as_o origen_n himself_o must_v needs_o confess_v he_o not_o allow_v the_o soul_n of_o brute_n to_o have_v be_v humane_a soul_n lapse_v as_o some_o pythagorean_n and_o platonist_n conceit_v but_o renounce_v and_o disclaim_v that_o opinion_n as_o monstrous_o absurd_a and_o irrational_a there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n give_v why_o there_o may_v not_o be_v as_o well_o other_o rank_n and_o order_n of_o soul_n superior_a to_o those_o of_o man_n without_o the_o injustice_n of_o prosopolepsie_n as_o beside_o simplicius_n plotinus_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o other_o platonist_n conceive_v but_o least_o of_o all_o can_v we_o assent_v to_o origen_n when_o from_o this_o principle_n that_o soul_n as_o such_o be_v essential_o endow_v with_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la or_o free_a will_n and_o therefore_o never_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n impeccable_a he_o infer_v those_o endless_a circuit_n of_o soul_n upward_o and_o downward_o and_o so_o make_v they_o to_o be_v never_o at_o rest_n deny_v they_o any_o fix_a state_n of_o holiness_n and_o happiness_n by_o divine_a grace_n such_o as_o wherein_o they_o may_v be_v free_a from_o the_o fear_n and_o danger_n of_o ever_o lose_v the_o same_o of_o who_o st._n austin_n therefore_o thus_o illu_z &_o propter_fw-la alia_fw-la nonnulla_fw-la &_o maximè_fw-la propter_fw-la alternantes_fw-la sine_fw-la cessatione_fw-la beatitudines_fw-la &_o miserias_fw-la &_o statutis_fw-la seculorum_fw-la intervallis_fw-la ab_fw-la istis_fw-la ad_fw-la illas_fw-la atque_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la ad_fw-la istas_fw-la itus_fw-la ac_fw-la reditus_fw-la interminabiles_fw-la non_fw-la immeritò_fw-la reprobavit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la misericors_fw-la videbatur_fw-la amisit_fw-la faciendo_fw-la sanctis_fw-la veras_n miserias_fw-la quibus_fw-la poenas_fw-la luerent_fw-la &_o falsas_fw-la beatitudines_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la verum_fw-la ac_fw-la securum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la sine_fw-la timore_fw-la certum_fw-la sempiterni_fw-la boni_fw-la gaudium_fw-la non_fw-la haberent_fw-la the_o church_n have_v deserve_o reject_v origen_n both_o for_o certain_a other_o opinion_n of_o he_o and_o especial_o for_o those_o his_o alternate_a beatitude_n and_o misery_n without_o end_n and_o for_o his_o infinite_a circuit_n ascent_n and_o descent_n of_o soul_n from_o one_o to_o the_o other_o in_o restless_a vicissitude_n and_o after_o period_n of_o time_n forasmuch_o as_o hereby_o he_o have_v quite_o lose_v that_o very_a title_n of_o pitiful_a or_o merciful_a which_o otherwise_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v deserve_v by_o make_v so_o many_o true_a misery_n for_o the_o best_a of_o saint_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v successive_o undergo_v punishment_n and_o smart_n and_o none_o but_o false_a happiness_n for_o they_o such_o as_o wherein_o they_o can_v never_o have_v any_o true_a or_o secure_a joy_n free_a from_o the_o fear_n of_o lose_v that_o good_a which_o they_o possess_v for_o this_o origenical_a hypothesis_n seem_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n promise_v eternal_a and_o everlasting_a life_n to_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o persevere_o obey_v he_o 1_o joh._n 2._o this_o be_v the_o promise_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v we_o even_o eternal_a life_n and_o titus_n 1.2_o in_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o god_n that_o can_v lie_v have_v promise_v and_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o lest_o all_o this_o shall_v be_v take_v for_o a_o periodical_a eternity_n only_o john_n 3.26_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o die_v and_o possible_o this_o may_v be_v the_o mean_v of_o st._n paul_n 2_o tim._n 1.10_o when_o he_o affirm_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o he_o have_v abolish_v death_n and_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_n through_o the_o gospel_n not_o because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o who_o have_v discover_v and_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n the_o soul_n immortality_n which_o be_v believe_v before_o not_o only_o by_o all_o the_o pharisaic_a jew_n but_o also_o by_o the_o generality_n of_o pagan_n too_o but_o because_o these_o for_o the_o most_o part_n hold_v their_o endless_a circuit_n and_o transmigration_n of_o soul_n therefore_o be_v he_o the_o first_o who_o bring_v everlasting_a life_n to_o light_n and_o give_v the_o world_n assurance_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o a_o fix_a and_o permanent_a state_n of_o happiness_n and_o a_o never_o fade_a crown_n of_o glory_n to_o be_v obtain_v he_o that_o overcome_v will_v i_o make_v a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o my_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v go_v no_o more_o out_o apoc._n 3.12_o now_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o mention_v origen_n here_o be_v because_o he_o be_v a_o person_n not_o only_o thorough_o skill_v in_o all_o the_o platonic_a learning_n but_o also_o one_o who_o be_v sufficient_o addict_v to_o those_o dogmata_fw-la he_o be_v common_o conceive_v to_o have_v have_v too_o great_a a_o kindness_n for_o they_o and_o therefore_o have_v there_o be_v any_o solidity_n of_o reason_n for_o either_o those_o particular_a henade_n or_o noes_n of_o they_o create_a being_n above_n the_o rank_n of_o soul_n and_o consequent_o according_a to_o the_o platonic_a hypothesis_n superior_a to_o the_o universal_a psyche_n also_o which_o be_v the_o three_o hypostasis_fw-la in_o their_o trinity_n and_o seem_v to_o answer_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o christian_a origen_n be_v as_o likely_a to_o have_v be_v favourable_a thereunto_o as_o any_o other_o but_o it_o be_v indeed_o manifest_o repugnant_a to_o reason_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o such_o particular_a that_o be_v create_v henade_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d essential_a goodness_n superior_a to_o the_o platonic_a first_n mind_n or_o any_o such_o noes_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d essential_a wisdom_n superior_a to_o their_o universal_a psyche_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o in_o the_o christian_a trinity_n beside_o the_o first_o person_n or_o the_o father_n one_o shall_v suppose_v a_o multitude_n of_o particular_a paternities_n superior_a to_o the_o second_o and_o also_o beside_o that_o second_o
also_o and_o therefore_o plato_n here_o make_v the_o three_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o his_o trinity_n likewise_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d coessential_a with_o the_o second_o as_o he_o elsewhere_o make_v the_o second_o coessential_a with_o the_o first_o it_o be_v true_a that_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o opificer_n in_o plato_n be_v common_o mean_v nous_fw-fr or_o intellect_n his_o second_o hypostasis_fw-la tim._n plotinus_n affirm_v as_o much_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o demiurgus_n to_o plato_n be_v intellect_n nevertheless_o both_o amelius_n and_o plotinus_n and_o other_o platonist_n call_v this_o three_o hypostasis_fw-la also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o artificer_n or_o opificer_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n some_o of_o they_o make_v he_o to_o be_v the_o second_o from_o mind_n or_o intellect_n other_o the_o three_o from_o the_o first_o good_a the_o supreme_a cause_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o be_v by_o atticus_n and_o amelius_n style_v demiurgus_n also_o wherefore_o as_o be_v before_o suggest_v according_a to_o the_o genuine_a and_o most_o ancient_a platonic_a doctrine_n all_o these_o three_o hypostasis_n be_v the_o joynt-creator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n beside_o themselves_o 2._o as_o ficinus_fw-la more_o than_o once_o declare_v the_o tenor_n thereof_o he_o tres_fw-la uno_fw-la quodam_fw-la consensu_fw-la omnía_fw-la producunt_fw-la these_o three_o with_o one_o common_a consent_n produce_v all_o thing_n and_o before_o he_o proclus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o first_o one_o by_o mind_n and_o soul_n and_o according_o we_o shall_v conclude_v in_o the_o word_n of_o porphyrius_n that_o the_o true_a and_o real_a deity_n according_a to_o plato_n extend_v to_o three_o divine_a hypostasis_n the_o last_o whereof_o be_v psyche_n or_o soul_n from_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o arius_n do_v not_o so_o much_o platonize_v as_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o ath●nasius_n who_o notwithstanding_o make_v not_o plato_n but_o the_o scripture_n together_o with_o reason_n deduce_v natural_a consequence_n therefrom_o their_o foundation_n and_o that_o the_o platonic_a trinity_n be_v a_o certain_a middle_a thing_n also_o betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n of_o sabellius_n and_o that_o of_o arius_n it_o be_v neither_o a_o trinity_n of_o word_n only_o or_o logical_a notion_n or_o mere_a modes_n but_o a_o trinity_n of_o hypostasis_n nor_o yet_o a_o jumble_v confusion_n of_o god_n and_o creature_n thing_n heterousious_a together_o neither_o the_o secon●_o nor_o thi●d_o of_o they_o be_v creature_n or_o make_v in_o time_n but_o all_o eternal_a infinite_a and_o creator_n but_o that_o it_o may_v yet_o more_o full_o appear_v how_o far_o the_o most_o refine_a platonic_a and_o parmenidian_a or_o pythagorick_a trinity_n do_v either_o agree_v or_o disagree_v with_o the_o scripture-doctrine_n and_o that_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o several_a age_n we_o shall_v here_o further_o observe_v two_o thing_n concern_v it_o the_o first_o whereof_o be_v this_o that_o though_o the_o genuine_a platonist_n and_o pythagorean_o suppose_v none_o of_o their_o three_o archical_a hypostasis_n to_o be_v indeed_o creature_n but_o all_o of_o they_o eternal_a necessary_o existent_a and_o universal_a or_o infinite_a and_o consequent_o creator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o do_v they_o nevertheless_o assert_v a_o essential_a dependence_n of_o the_o second_o hypostasis_fw-la upon_o the_o first_o as_o also_o of_o the_o three_o both_o upon_o the_o first_o and_o second_o together_o with_o a_o gradual_a subordination_n in_o they_o thus_o plotinus_n write_v of_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o eternal_a intellect_n which_o be_v the_o second_o in_o the_o platonic_a trinity_n and_o answer_n to_o the_o son_n or_o word_n in_o the_o christian_a 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o be_v always_o perfect_a generate_v what_o be_v eternal_a and_o th●t_v which_o it_o generate_v be_v always_o less_o than_o itself_o what_o shall_v we_o therefore_o say_v of_o the_o most_o absolute_o perfect_a be_v of_o all_o do_v that_o produce_v nothing_o from_o itself_o or_o rather_o do_v it_o not_o produce_v the_o great_a of_o all_o thing_n after_o it_o now_o the_o great_a of_o all_o thing_n after_o the_o most_o absolute_o perfect_a be_v be_v mind_n or_o intellect_n and_o this_o be_v second_o to_o it_o for_o mind_n behold_v this_o as_o its_o father_n and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o nothing_o else_o beside_o it_o whereas_o that_o first_o principle_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o no_o mind_n or_o intellect_n what_o be_v generate_v from_o that_o which_o be_v better_o than_o mind_n must_v needs_o be_v mind_n or_o intellect_n because_o mind_n be_v better_a than_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o be_v all_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n after_o it_o and_o juniour_n to_o it_o as_o psyche_n itself_o or_o the_o first_o soul_n for_o this_o be_v also_o the_o word_n or_o energy_n of_o mind_n as_o that_o be_v the_o word_n and_o energy_n of_o the_o first_o good_n again_o the_o same_o be_v more_o particular_o declare_v by_o he_o concern_v that_o three_o hypostasis_fw-la call_v psyche_n that_o as_o it_o essential_o depend_v upon_o the_o second_o so_o be_v it_o gradual_o subordinate_a or_o some_o way_n inferior_a to_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 489._o perfect_a intellect_n generate_v soul_n and_o it_o be_v perfect_a must_v needs_o generate_v for_o so_o great_a a_o power_n can_v not_o remain_v sterile_a but_o that_o which_o be_v here_o beget_v also_o can_v be_v great_a than_o its_o begetter_n but_o must_v needs_o be_v inferior_a to_o it_o as_o be_v the_o image_n thereof_o elsewhere_o the_o same_o philosopher_n call_v the_o first_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o this_o trinity_n 554._o uranus_n the_o second_o chronos_n and_o the_o three_o zeus_n as_o plato_n have_v do_v before_o and_o handsome_o allegorise_v that_o fable_n conclude_v in_o this_o manner_n concern_v chronos_n or_o the_o second_o of_o these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o be_v in_o a_o middle_a state_n or_o degree_n betwixt_o his_o father_n who_o be_v great_a and_o his_o son_n who_o be_v less_o and_o inferior_a again_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v by_o that_o philosopher_n thus_o assert_v in_o general_a 513._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o thing_n generate_v from_o eternity_n or_o produce_v by_o way_n of_o natural_a emanation_n there_o be_v no_o progress_n upward_o but_o all_o downward_o and_o still_o a_o gradual_a descent_n into_o great_a multiplicity_n we_o shall_v cite_v but_o only_o one_o passage_n more_o out_o of_o this_o philosopher_n which_o contain_v something_o of_o argumentation_n in_o it_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ●5_n that_o which_o be_v generate_v or_o emane_v immediate_o from_o the_o first_o and_o high_a being_n be_v not_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n with_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o that_o repeat_v again_o and_o ingeminated_a and_o as_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o so_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v better_o than_o it_o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v gradual_o subordinate_a and_o inferior_a to_o it_o which_o gradual_a subordination_n and_o essential_a dependence_n of_o the_o second_o and_o ●hird_n hypostasis_n upon_o the_o first_o be_v by_o these_o platonic_n illustrate_v several_a way_n ficinus_fw-la resemble_v it_o to_o the_o circulation_n of_o water_n when_o some_o heavy_a body_n fall_v into_o it_o its_o superficies_n be_v depress_v and_o from_o thence_o every_o way_n circular_o wrinkle_a alius_fw-la say_v he_o sic_fw-la fermè_fw-la prostuit_fw-la ex_fw-la alio_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o aqua_fw-la circulus_fw-la dependet_fw-la à_fw-la circulo_fw-la one_o of_o these_o divine_a hypostasis_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n so_o depend_v upon_o another_o as_o one_o circulation_n of_o water_n depend_v upon_o another_o where_o it_o be_v observable_a also_o that_o the_o wide_a the_o circulate_v wave_n grow_v still_o have_v it_o the_o more_o subsidence_n and_o detumescence_n together_o with_o a_o abatement_n of_o celerity_n till_o at_o last_o all_o become_v plain_a and_o smooth_a again_o but_o by_o the_o pagan_a platonist_n themselves_o each_o follow_v hypostasis_fw-la be_v many_o time_n say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o print_n stamp_n or_o impression_n make_v by_o the_o former_a like_o the_o signature_n of_o a_o seal_n upon_o wax_n again_o it_o be_v often_o call_v by_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o image_n and_o representation_n and_o imitation_n which_o if_o consider_v in_o audible_n then_o will_v the_o second_o hypostasis_fw-la be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o echo_n of_o a_o original_a voice_n and_o the_o three_o as_o the_o repeat_v echo_n or_o echo_n of_o that_o echo_n as_o if_o both_o the_o second_o and_o three_o hypostasis_n be_v but_o certain_a replication_n of_o the_o first_o
only_o one_o general_n and_o universal_a essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n belong_v to_o they_o all_o they_o be_v all_o god_n but_o be_v also_o three_o individual_n under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o vltimate_a species_n or_o specific_a essence_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o godhead_n just_o as_o three_o individual_a man_n thomas_n peter_n and_o john_n under_o that_o vltimate_a species_n of_o man_n or_o that_o specific_a essence_n of_o humanity_n which_o have_v only_o a_o numerical_a difference_n from_o one_o another_o wherefore_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la or_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n be_v according_o thus_o define_v by_o some_o of_o these_o father_n viz._n anastasius_n and_o cyril_n to_o be_v essentia_fw-la cum_fw-la suis_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la proprietatibus_fw-la ab_fw-la iis_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la speciei_fw-la numero_fw-la differens_fw-la a_o essence_n or_o substance_n with_o its_o certain_a property_n or_o individuate_v circumstance_n differ_v only_o numerical_o from_o those_o of_o the_o same_o species_n with_o it_o this_o doctrine_n be_v plain_o assert_v and_o industrious_o pursue_v beside_o several_a other_o both_o of_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n especial_o by_o gregory_n nyssen_n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n maximus_n the_o martyr_n and_o damascen_n who_o word_n because_o petavius_n have_v set_v they_o down_o at_o large_a we_o shall_v not_o here_o insert_v now_o these_o be_v they_o who_o principal_o insist_v upon_o the_o absolute_a co-equality_n and_o independent_a co-ordination_a of_o the_o three_o hypostasis_n or_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n as_o compare_v with_o one_o another_o because_o as_o three_o man_n though_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o father_n another_o a_o son_n and_o the_o three_o a_o nephew_n yet_o have_v no_o essential_a dependence_n one_o upon_o another_o but_o be_v natural_o coequal_a and_o vnsubordinate_a there_o be_v only_o a_o numerical_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o so_o do_v they_o in_o like_a manner_n conclude_v that_o the_o three_o hypostasis_n or_o person_n of_o the_o deity_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v likewise_o but_o three_o individual_n under_o the_o same_o vltimate_a species_n or_o specific_a essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o differ_v only_o numerical_o from_o one_o another_o be_v absolute_o coequal_a vnsubordinate_a and_o independent_a and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v common_o call_v by_o they_o their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d their_o co-essentiality_a or_o con-substantiality_a wherefore_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o st._n cyril_n one_o of_o these_o theologer_n find_v no_o other_o fault_n at_o all_o with_o the_o platonic_a trinity_n but_o only_o this_o that_o such_o a_o homoousiotes_n such_o a_o co-essentiality_a or_o consubstantiality_n as_o this_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v therein_o 270._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o will_v have_v be_v nothing_o at_o all_o want_v to_o the_o platonic_a trinity_n for_o a_o absolute_a agreement_n of_o it_o with_o the_o christian_a have_v they_o but_o accommodate_v the_o right_a notion_n of_o co-essentiality_a or_o con-substantiality_a to_o their_o three_o hypostasis_n so_o that_o their_o might_n have_v be_v but_o one_o specific_a nature_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n not_o further_o distinguishable_a by_o any_o natural_a diversity_n but_o numerical_o only_a and_o so_o no_o one_o hypostasis_fw-la any_o way_n inferior_a or_o subordinate_a to_o another_o that_o be_v have_v these_o platonist_n comply_v with_o that_o hypothesis_n of_o st._n cyril_n and_o other_o that_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v but_o three_o independent_a and_o coordinate_a individual_n under_o the_o same_o ultimate_a species_n or_o specific_a essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n as_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n under_o that_o species_n or_o common_a nature_n of_o humanity_n and_o so_o take_v in_o this_o co-essentiality_a or_o con-substantiality_a of_o they_o than_o have_v they_o be_v complete_o orthodox_n though_o we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o this_o platonic_a trinity_n be_v in_o another_o sense_n homoousian_n and_o perhaps_o it_o will_v appear_v afterward_o that_o it_o be_v so_o also_o in_o the_o very_a sense_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o of_o athanasius_n again_o these_o theologer_n suppose_v the_o three_o person_n of_o their_o trinity_n to_o have_v real_o no_o other_o than_o a_o specific_a unity_n or_o identity_n and_o because_o it_o seem_v plain_o to_o follow_v from_o hence_o that_o therefore_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v as_o much_o three_o god_n as_o three_o man_n be_v three_o man_n these_o learned_a father_n endeavour_v with_o their_o logic_n to_o prove_v that_o three_o man_n be_v but_o abusive_o and_o improper_o so_o call_v three_o they_o be_v real_o &_o true_o but_o one_o because_o there_o be_v but_o one_o &_o the_o same_o specific_a essence_n or_o substance_n of_o humane_a nature_n in_o they_o all_o and_o serious_o persuade_v man_n to_o lay_v aside_o that_o kind_n of_o language_n by_o which_o same_o logic_n of_o they_o they_o may_v as_o well_o prove_v also_o that_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o man_n and_o that_o all_o epicurus_n his_o god_n be_v but_o one_o god_n neither_o but_o not_o to_o urge_v here_o that_o according_a to_o this_o hypothesis_n there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o reason_n give_v why_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o as_o three_o such_o individual_n in_o the_o species_n of_o god_n which_o differ_v only_o numerical_o from_o one_o another_o they_o be_v but_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n thrice_o repeat_v and_o yet_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o than_o three_o such_o neither_o and_o not_o three_o hundred_o or_o three_o thousand_o or_o as_o many_o as_o there_o be_v individual_n in_o the_o species_n of_o man_n we_o say_v not_o to_o urge_v this_o it_o seem_v plain_a that_o this_o trinity_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o kind_n of_o tritheism_n and_o that_o of_o god_n independent_a and_o coordinate_a too_o and_o therefore_o some_o will_v think_v that_o the_o ancient_n and_o genuine_a platonic_a trinity_n take_v with_o all_o its_o fault_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o this_o trinity_n of_o st._n cyril_n and_o st._n gregory_n nyssen_n and_o several_a other_o repute_a orthodox_n father_n and_o more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o principle_n both_o of_o christianity_n and_o of_o reason_n however_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o hence_o that_o these_o repute_a orthodox_n father_n who_o be_v not_o a_o few_o be_v far_o from_o think_v the_o three_o hypostasis_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o have_v the_o same_o singular_a existent_a essence_n they_o suppose_v they_o to_o have_v no_o otherwise_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o they_o nor_o to_o be_v one_o god_n than_o three_o individual_a man_n have_v one_o common_a specifical_a essence_n of_o manhood_n in_o they_o and_o be_v all_o one_o man._n but_o as_o this_o trinity_n come_v afterward_o to_o be_v decry_v for_o tritheistick_a so_o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o start_v there_o up_o that_o other_o trinity_n of_o person_n numerical_o the_o same_o or_o have_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o singular_a existent_a essence_n a_o doctrine_n which_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v own_v by_o any_o public_a authority_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n save_v that_o of_o the_o lateran_n council_n only_o and_o that_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v ever_o entertain_v by_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o those_o first_o opposer_n of_o arianism_n may_v be_v render_v probable_a in_o the_o first_o place_n from_o the_o free_a confession_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o d._n petavius_n a_o person_n well_o acquaint_v with_o ecclesiastic_a antiquity_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n especial_o because_o many_o be_v much_o lead_v 13._o by_o such_o new_a name_n and_o authority_n in_o eo_fw-la praecipuam_fw-la vim_o collocasse_fw-la patres_fw-la ut_fw-la aequalem_fw-la patri_fw-la naturâ_fw-la excellentiâque_fw-la filium_fw-la esse_fw-la defenderent_fw-la citra_fw-la expressam_fw-la singularitatis_fw-la mentionem_fw-la licet_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la conjicere_fw-la etenim_fw-la nicaeni_n isti_fw-la praesules_fw-la quibus_fw-la nemo_fw-la melius_fw-la arianae_n sectae_fw-la arcana_fw-la cognovit_fw-la nemo_fw-la qua_fw-la re_fw-la opprimenda_fw-la maximè_fw-la foret_fw-la acrius_fw-la dijudicare_fw-la potuit_fw-la nihil_fw-la in_o professionis_fw-la suae_fw-la formulâ_fw-la spectarunt_fw-la aliud_fw-la nisi_fw-la ut_fw-la aequalitatem_fw-la illam_fw-la essentiae_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la aeternitatis_fw-la astruerent_a testatur_fw-la hoc_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vox_fw-la ipsa_fw-la quae_fw-la arx_fw-la quaedam_fw-la fuit_fw-la catholici_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la haec_fw-la enim_fw-la aequalitatem_fw-la potius_fw-la essentiae_fw-la quam_fw-la singularitatem_fw-la significat_fw-la ut_fw-la capite_fw-la quinto_fw-la docui_fw-la deinde_fw-la cetera_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la modi_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la decreto_fw-la ut_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o chief_a force_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n oppose_v against_o the_o arian_n heretic_n be_v in_o assert_v only_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n as_o to_o nature_n or_o essence_n without_o any_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o singularity_n of_o the_o same_o
or_o fountain_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o it_o from_o which_o the_o other_o be_v derive_v thus_o do_v he_o write_v in_o his_o five_o oration_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v but_o one_o principle_n and_o according_o but_o one_o god_n again_o in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o sabellianist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 656._o there_o be_v not_o two_o god_n both_o because_o there_o be_v not_o two_o father_n and_o because_o that_o which_o be_v beget_v be_v not_o of_o a_o different_a essence_n from_o that_o which_o beget_v for_o he_o that_o introduce_v two_o principle_n preach_v two_o god_n which_o be_v the_o impiety_n of_o martion_n according_o the_o same_o athanasius_n declare_v 920._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o essence_n or_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n be_v the_o principle_n and_o root_n and_o fountain_n of_o the_o son_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v he_o approve_v of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o dionysius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v the_o first_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n but_o the_o son_n a_o river_n pour_v out_o from_o he_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v it_o also_o when_o he_o compare_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n to_o the_o water_n and_o the_o vapour_n arise_v from_o it_o to_o the_o light_n and_o the_o splendour_n to_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n and_o he_o conclude_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n from_o hence_o in_o this_o manner_n 275._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o divine_a trinity_n must_v needs_o be_v collect_v and_o gather_v up_o together_o under_o that_o omnipotent_a god_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o under_o one_o head_n but_o the_o chief_a force_n of_o this_o consideration_n be_v only_o to_o exclude_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o marcionist_n who_o make_v more_o independent_a and_o selfexistent_a principle_n and_o go_n notwithstanding_o which_o it_o may_v still_o be_v object_v that_o the_o christian_a trinity_n be_v a_o trinity_n of_o distinct_a subordinate_a god_n in_o opposition_n whereunto_o this_o argument_n seem_v only_o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n to_o what_o follow_v namely_o of_o the_o close_a conjunction_n of_o these_o three_o hypostasis_n into_o one_o god_n forasmuch_o as_o be_v they_o three_o independent_a principle_n there_o can_v not_o be_v any_o coalescence_n of_o they_o into_o one._n in_o the_o next_o place_n therefore_o athanasius_n further_o add_v that_o these_o three_o divine_a hypostasis_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d separate_a and_o disjoin_v being_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d indivisible_o unite_v to_o one_o another_o thus_o in_o his_o five_o oration_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v both_o one_o thing_n in_o the_o godhead_n and_o in_o that_o the_o word_n be_v beget_v from_o he_o be_v indivisible_o and_o inseparable_o conjoin_v with_o he_o where_o when_o he_o affirm_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n to_o be_v one_o in_o the_o godhead_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v they_o to_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o singular_a essence_n but_o only_o generical_a and_o universal_a because_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n he_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v two_o but_o indivisible_o and_o inseparable_o unite_v together_o again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr sent._n dionys._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o son_n be_v indivisible_a from_o the_o father_n as_o the_o splendour_n be_v from_o the_o light_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o insi_v further_a upon_o this_o point_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o dionysius_n after_o this_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n dionysius_n teach_v that_o the_o son_n be_v cognate_n with_o the_o father_n and_o indivisible_a from_o he_o as_o reason_n be_v from_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o river_n from_o the_o fountain_n who_o be_v there_o therefore_o that_o will_v go_v about_o to_o alienate_v reason_n from_o the_o mind_n and_o to_o separate_v the_o river_n from_o the_o fountain_n make_v up_o a_o wall_n between_o they_o or_o to_o cut_v off_o the_o splendour_n from_o the_o light_n thus_o also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o serapion_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o a_o creature_n ●94_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v these_o man_n first_o divide_v the_o splendour_n from_o the_o light_n or_o wisdom_n from_o he_o that_o be_v wise_a or_o else_o let_v they_o wonder_v no_o more_o how_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v elsewhere_o athanasius_n call_v the_o whole_a trinity_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o trinity_n vndivided_a and_o unite_v to_o itself_o which_o athanasian_n indivisibility_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o three_o be_v not_o three_o in_o it_o but_o first_o of_o all_o that_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v be_v without_o the_o other_o as_o the_o original_a light_n or_o sun_n can_v not_o be_v without_o the_o splendour_n nor_o the_o splendour_n without_o the_o original_a light_n and_o neither_o one_o nor_o tother_o of_o they_o without_o a_o diffuse_v derivative_a light_n wherefore_o god_n the_o father_n be_v a_o eternal_a sun_n must_v needs_o have_v also_o a_o eternal_a splendour_n and_o a_o eternal_a light_n and_o second_o that_o these_o be_v so_o near_o and_o intimate_o conjoin_v together_o that_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d continuity_n betwixt_o they_o which_o yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o way_n of_o corporeal_a thing_n but_o so_o as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n incorporeal_a three_o athanasius_n ascend_v yet_o high_o affirm_v the_o hypostasis_n of_o the_o trinity_n not_o only_o to_o be_v indivisible_o conjoin_v with_o one_o another_o but_o also_o to_o have_v a_o mutual_a inexistence_n in_o each_o other_o which_o latter_a greek_a father_n have_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d their_o circuminsession_n to_o this_o purpose_n do_v he_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o dionysius_n 66●_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o reason_n be_v the_o efflux_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o in_o man_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o heart_n into_o the_o tongue_n where_o it_o be_v become_v another_o reason_n or_o word_n differ_v from_o that_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o yet_o do_v these_o both_o mutual_o exist_v in_o each_o other_o they_o belong_v to_o one_o another_o and_o so_o though_o be_v two_o be_v one_o thing_n thus_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n one_o thing_n they_o be_v say_v to_o exist_v in_o each_o other_o and_o athanasius_n further_a illustrate_v this_o also_o by_o certain_a similitude_n as_o that_o again_o of_o the_o original_a light_n and_o the_o splendour_n he_o affirm_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o original_a light_n be_v in_o the_o splendour_n and_o again_o the_o splendour_n in_o the_o sun_n and_o also_o that_o of_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n or_o the_o king_n and_o his_o picture_n which_o he_o thus_o insi_v upon_o 457._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o picture_n be_v contain_v the_o form_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o king_n and_o in_o the_o king_n the_o form_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o picture_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o one_o when_o he_o have_v see_v the_o picture_n shall_v afterward_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o king_n the_o picture_n will_v by_o a_o prosopopoeia_fw-la bespeak_v he_o after_o this_o manner_n ibid._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o and_o the_o king_n be_o one_o for_o i_o be_o in_o he_o and_o he_o be_v in_o i_o and_o what_o you_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o i_o the_o same_o may_v you_o observe_v in_o he_o also_o and_o what_o you_o see_v in_o he_o you_o may_v see_v likewise_o in_o i_o he_o therefore_o that_o worship_v the_o image_n therein_o worship_v the_o king_n the_o image_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o form_n of_o the_o king_n elsewhere_o in_o the_o four_o oration_n he_o thus_o insi_v upon_o this_o particular_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 456._o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o father_n as_o may_v be_v conceive_v from_o hence_o because_o the_o whole_a be_v of_o the_o son_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o father_n he_o be_v derive_v from_o it_o as_o the_o splendour_n from_o the_o light_n and_o the_o river_n from_o the_o fountain_n so_o that_o he_o who_o see_v the_o son_n sees_z that_o which_o be_v the_o father_n own_o and_o proper_a again_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o sun_n because_o that_o which_o be_v the_o father_n own_o and_o proper_a that_o be_v the_o son_n according_o as_o the_o sun_n be_v also_o in_o the_o splendour_n the_o mind_n in_o reason_n and_o the_o fountain_n in_o the_o river_n what_o cavil_v the_o arrian_n have_v against_o this_o doctrine_n athanasius_n also_o enform_v we_o 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o the_o arian_n begin_v
paradigm_n of_o that_o god_n true_o good_a which_o be_v self-begotten_a and_o his_o own_o parent_n for_o this_o be_v great_a and_o before_o he_o and_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o first_o intelligible_a idea_n wherefore_o from_o this_o one_o do_v that_o self_n sufficient_a god_n who_o be_v autopator_n or_o his_o own_o parent_n cause_n himself_o to_o shine_v forth_o for_o this_o be_v also_o a_o principle_n and_o the_o god_n of_o god_n a_o monad_n from_o the_o first_o one_o before_o all_o essence_n where_o so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v understand_v jamblichus_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o simple_a unity_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o that_o tagathon_n or_o monad_n which_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o three_o divine_a hypostasis_n and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v afterward_o take_v up_o by_o proclus_n he_o declare_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n 93._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d plato_n every_o where_o ascend_v from_o multitude_n to_o unity_n from_o whence_o also_o the_o order_n of_o the_o many_o proceed_v but_o before_o plato_n and_o according_a to_o the_o natural_a order_n of_o thing_n one_o be_v before_o multitude_n and_o every_o divine_a order_n begin_v from_o a_o monad_n wherefore_o though_o the_o divine_a number_n proceed_v in_o a_o trinity_n yet_o before_o this_o trinity_n must_v there_o be_v a_o monad_n let_v there_o be_v three_o demiurgical_a hypostasis_n nevertheless_o before_o these_o must_v there_o be_v one_o because_o none_o of_o the_o divine_a order_n begin_v from_o multitude_n we_o conclude_v that_o the_o demiurgical_a number_n do_v not_o begin_v from_o a_o trinity_n but_o from_o a_o monad_n stand_v alone_o by_o itself_o before_o that_o trinity_n here_o proclus_n though_o endeavour_v to_o gain_v some_o countenance_n for_o this_o doctrine_n out_o of_o plato_n yet_o as_o fear_v lest_o that_o shall_v fail_v he_o do_v he_o fly_v to_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o from_o thence_o will_v infer_v that_o before_o the_o trinity_n of_o demiurgick_a hypostasis_n there_o must_v be_v a_o single_a monad_n or_o henad_n stand_v alone_o by_o itself_o as_o the_o head_n thereof_o and_o st._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v juniour_n to_o jamblichus_n but_o senior_n to_o proclus_n seem_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o innovation_n in_o the_o platonic_a theology_n as_o a_o thing_n then_o new_o creep_v up_o ●71_n and_o after_o the_o time_n of_o porphyry_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o those_o before_o mention_v contradict_v this_o doctrine_n of_o porphyrius_n &_o the_o ancient_a platonist_n affirm_v that_o the_o tagathon_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v connumerate_v or_o reckon_v together_o with_o those_o which_o proceed_v from_o it_o but_o to_o be_v exempt_v from_o all_o communion_n because_o it_o be_v altogether_o simple_a and_o uncapable_a of_o any_o commixture_n or_o consociation_n with_o any_o other_o wherefore_o these_o begin_v their_o trinity_n with_o nous_fw-fr or_o intellect_n make_v that_o the_o first_o the_o only_a difference_n here_o be_v that_o jamblichus_n seem_v to_o make_v the_o first_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o trinity_n after_o a_o monad_n to_o be_v tagathon_n but_o st._n cyril_n nous._n however_o they_o both_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o also_o do_v proclus_n after_o they_o wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o when_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o athanasius_n the_o christian_a doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n come_v to_o be_v punctual_o state_v and_o settle_v and_o much_o to_o be_v insist_v upon_o by_o christian_n jamblichus_n and_o other_o platonist_n who_o be_v great_a antagonist_n of_o the_o same_o perceive_v what_o advantage_n the_o christian_n have_v from_o the_o platonic_a trinity_n than_o first_o of_o all_o innovate_v this_o doctrine_n introduce_v a_o quaternity_n of_o divine_a hypostasis_n instead_o of_o a_o trinity_n the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v not_o coordinate_a with_o the_o other_o three_o nor_o consociate_v or_o reckon_v with_o they_o but_o all_o of_o they_o though_o subordinate_a yet_o universal_a and_o such_o as_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a that_o be_v infinite_a and_o omnipotent_a and_o therefore_o none_o of_o they_o creature_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o before_o this_o time_n or_o the_o age_n that_o jamblichus_n live_v in_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n at_o all_o dream_v of_o by_o any_o platonist_n as_o a_o unity_n before_o and_o above_o the_o trinity_n and_o so_o a_o quaternity_n of_o divine_a hypostasis_n plotinus_n positive_o determine_v that_o there_o can_v neither_o be_v more_o nor_o few_o than_o three_o and_o proclus_n himself_o acknowledge_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n or_o cabala_n to_o have_v run_v only_o of_o three_o god_n and_o numenius_n who_o be_v senior_n to_o they_o both_o write_v thus_o of_o socrates_n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o also_o before_o plato_n assert_v three_o god_n that_o be_v three_o divine_a hypostasis_n and_o no_o more_o as_o principle_n therein_o follow_v the_o pythagorean_n moreover_o the_o same_o proclus_n beside_o his_o henade_n and_o noes_n before_o mention_v add_v certain_a other_o fantastic_a trinity_n of_o his_o own_o also_o as_o this_o for_o example_n of_o the_o first_o essence_n the_o first_o life_n and_o the_o first_o intellect_n to_o omit_v other_o whereby_o that_o ancient_a cabala_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theology_n of_o divine_a tradition_n of_o three_o archical_a hypostasis_n and_o no_o more_o be_v disguise_v pervert_v and_o adulterate_v but_o beside_o this_o advantage_n from_o the_o ancient_a pagan_a platonist_n and_o pythagorean_n admit_v a_o trinity_n into_o their_o theology_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o christianity_n do_v whereby_o christianity_n be_v the_o more_o recommend_v to_o the_o philosophic_a pagan_n there_o be_v another_o advantage_n of_o the_o same_o extend_v even_o to_o this_o present_a time_n probable_o not_o unintended_a also_o by_o divine_a providence_n that_o whereas_o bold_a and_o conceit_a wit_n precipitant_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n for_o nonsense_n absolute_a r._n pugnancy_n to_o humane_a faculty_n and_o impossibility_n have_v thereupon_o some_o of_o they_o quite_o shake_v off_o christianity_n and_o all_o reveal_v religion_n profess_v only_a theism_n other_o have_v frustrate_v the_o design_n thereof_o by_o pagmize_v it_o into_o creature-worship_n or_o idolatry_n this_o ignorant_a and_o conceit_a confidence_n of_o both_o may_v be_v retund_v and_o confute_v from_o hence_o because_o the_o most_o ingenious_a and_o acute_a of_o all_o the_o pagan_a philosopher_n the_o platonist_n and_o pythagorean_n who_o have_v no_o bias_n at_o all_o upon_o they_o nor_o any_o scripture_n revelation_n that_o may_v seem_v to_o impose_v upon_o their_o faculty_n but_o follow_v the_o free_a sentiment_n and_o dictate_v of_o their_o own_o mind_n do_v notwithstanding_o not_o only_o entertain_v this_o trinity_n of_o divine_a hypostasis_n eternal_a and_o uncreated_a but_o be_v also_o fond_a of_o the_o hypothesis_n and_o make_v it_o a_o main_a fundamental_a of_o their_o theology_n it_o now_o appear_v from_o what_o we_o have_v declare_v that_o as_o to_o the_o ancient_n and_o genuine_a platonist_n and_o pythagorean_n none_o of_o their_o trinity_n of_o god_n or_o divine_a hypostasis_n be_v independent_a so_o neither_o be_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d creature-god_n but_o uncreated_a they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o not_o only_o eternal_a and_o necessary_o existent_a and_o immutable_a but_o also_o universal_a that_o be_v infinite_a and_o omnipotent_a cause_n principle_n and_o creator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o these_o platonist_n can_v no●_n just_o be_v tax_v for_o idolatry_n in_o give_v religious_a worship_n to_o each_o hypostasis_n of_o this_o their_o trinity_n and_o we_o have_v the_o rather_o insist_v so_o long_o upon_o this_o platonic_a trinity_n because_o we_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n afterward_o in_o our_o defence_n of_o christianity_n where_o we_o be_v to_o show_v that_o one_o grand_a design_n of_o christianity_n be_v to_o abolish_v the_o pagan_a idolatry_n or_o creature-worship_n itself_o not_o just_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o same_o from_o that_o religious_a worship_n give_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o the_o trinity_n the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n they_o be_v none_o of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o true_a and_o orthodox_n christianity_n creature_n however_o the_o arian_n hypothesis_n make_v they_o such_o and_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o grand_a reason_n why_o the_o ancient_a father_n so_o zealous_o oppose_v arianism_n because_o that_o christianity_n which_o be_v intend_v by_o god_n almighty_a for_o a_o mean_n to_o extirpate_v pagan_a idolatry_n be_v thereby_o itself_o paganize_v and_o idolatrize_v and_o make_v high_o guilty_a of_o that_o very_a thing_n which_o it_o so_o much_o condemn_v in_o the_o pagan_n that_o be_v creature-worship_n this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o sundry_a testimony_n of_o athanasius_n basil_n gregory_n nyssen_n
include_v within_o itself_o or_o be_v concomitant_a and_o concurrent_a with_o it_o the_o necessity_n of_o its_o own_o perfect_a nature_n and_o now_o we_o shall_v leave_v the_o intelligent_a and_o impartial_a reader_n to_o make_v his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v the_o forementioned_a cartesian_a argument_n for_o a_o deity_n draw_v from_o its_o idea_n as_o include_v necessity_n of_o existence_n in_o it_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v mere_o sophistical_a or_o have_v something_o of_o solidity_n and_o reality_n in_o it_o however_o it_o be_v not_o very_o probable_a that_o many_o atheist_n will_v be_v convince_v thereby_o but_o that_o they_o will_v rather_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v no_o probation_n at_o all_o of_o a_o deity_n but_o only_o a_o affirmation_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o dispute_n and_o a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n that_o therefore_o god_n be_v because_o he_o be_v or_o can_v but_o be_v wherefore_o we_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v out_o a_o argument_n or_o demonstration_n for_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n from_o his_o idea_n as_o include_v necessary_a existence_n in_o it_o some_o other_o way_n and_o first_o we_o shall_v make_v a_o offer_n towards_o it_o in_o this_o manner_n though_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v from_o hence_o because_o we_o can_v frame_n a_o idea_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o our_o mind_n that_o therefore_o such_o a_o thing_n real_o exi_v yet_o nevertheless_o whatsoever_o we_o can_v frame_n a_o idea_n of_o imply_v no_o manner_n of_o contradiction_n in_o its_o conception_n we_o may_v certain_o conclude_v thus_o much_o of_o it_o that_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o impossible_a to_o be_v there_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o impossible_a but_o what_o be_v contradictious_a and_o repugnant_a to_o conception_n now_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n or_o a_o perfect_a be_v can_v imply_v no_o manner_n of_o contradiction_n in_o it_o because_o it_o be_v only_o the_o idea_n of_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o have_v all_o possible_a and_o conceivable_a perfection_n in_o it_o that_o be_v all_o perfection_n which_o be_v neither_o contradictious_a in_o themselves_o nor_o to_o one_o another_o and_o they_o who_o will_v not_o allow_v of_o this_o consequence_n from_o the_o idea_n of_o a_o perfect_a be_v include_v necessity_n of_o existence_n in_o it_o that_o it_o do_v therefore_o actual_o exist_v yet_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o at_o least_o will_v follow_v from_o its_o imply_v no_o manner_n of_o contradiction_n in_o it_o that_o be_v therefore_o a_o thing_n possible_a or_o not_o impossible_a to_o be_v for_o thus_o much_o be_v true_a of_o all_o other_o contingent_a thing_n who_o idea_n impli_v no_o contradiction_n that_o they_o be_v therefore_o possible_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v of_o that_o who_o very_a idea_n and_o essence_n contain_v a_o necessity_n of_o existence_n in_o it_o as_o the_o essence_n of_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o perfect_a be_v do_v and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o step_v that_o we_o now_o make_v in_o way_n of_o argumentation_n from_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n or_o a_o perfect_a be_v have_v nothing_o contradictious_a in_o it_o that_o therefore_o god_n be_v at_o least_o possible_a or_o no_o way_n impossible_a to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n as_o this_o particular_a idea_n of_o that_o which_o be_v possible_a include_v necessity_n of_o existence_n in_o it_o from_o these_o two_o thing_n put_v together_o at_o least_o the_o possibility_n of_o such_o a_o be_v and_o its_o necessary_a existence_n if_o not_o from_o the_o latter_a alone_a will_v it_o according_a to_o reason_n follow_v that_o he_o actual_o is._n if_o god_n or_o a_o perfect_a be_v in_o who_o essence_n be_v contain_v necessary_a existence_n be_v possible_a or_o no_o way_n impossible_a to_o have_v be_v then_o he_o be_v because_o upon_o supposition_n of_o his_o nonexistence_n it_o will_v be_v absolute_o impossible_a that_o he_o shall_v ever_o have_v be_v it_o do_v not_o thus_o follow_v concern_v imperfect_a being_n that_o be_v contingent_o possible_a that_o if_o they_o be_v not_o it_o be_v therefore_o impossible_a for_o they_o ever_o to_o have_v be_v for_o that_o which_o be_v contingent_a though_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o may_v it_o for_o all_o that_o possible_o have_v be_v but_o a_o perfect_a necessary_o existent_a be_v upon_o the_o bare_a supposition_n of_o its_o nonexistence_n can_v no_o more_o possible_o have_v be_v than_o it_o can_v possible_o hereafter_o be_v because_o if_o it_o may_v have_v be_v though_o it_o be_v not_o then_o will_v it_o not_o be_v a_o necessary_a existent_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o be_v this_o a_o necessary_a existent_n be_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a it_o be_v because_o upon_o supposition_n of_o its_o nonexistence_a it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o it_o ever_o to_o have_v be_v wherefore_o god_n be_v either_o impossible_a to_o have_v be_v or_o else_o he_o is._n for_o if_o god_n be_v possible_a and_o yet_o be_v not_o then_o be_v he_o not_o a_o necessary_a but_o contingent_a be_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o hypothesis_n but_o because_o this_o argumentation_n may_v perhaps_o run_v the_o same_o fate_n also_o with_o the_o former_a and_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o subtlety_n do_v but_o little_a execution_n neither_o if_o not_o be_v account_v sophistical_a too_o man_n be_v general_o prone_a to_o distrust_v the_o firmness_n and_o solidity_n of_o such_o thin_a and_o subtle_a cobweb_n as_o these_o and_o the_o like_a may_v seem_v to_o be_v or_o their_o ability_n to_o support_v the_o weight_n of_o so_o great_a a_o truth_n and_o to_o suspect_v themselves_o to_o be_v illaqueat_v and_o circumvent_v in_o they_o therefore_o shall_v we_o lay_v no_o stress_n upon_o this_o neither_o but_o proceed_v to_o something_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o plain_a and_o downright_n after_o this_o manner_n whatsoever_o we_o can_v frame_v a_o idea_n of_o in_o our_o mind_n imply_v no_o manner_n of_o contradiction_n this_o either_o actual_o be_v or_o else_o if_o it_o be_v not_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o it_o to_o be._n but_o if_o god_n be_v not_o he_o be_v not_o possible_a hereafter_o to_o be_v therefore_o he_o is._n the_o reason_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o minor_a be_v evident_a because_o if_o god_n be_v not_o and_o yet_o possible_a hereafter_o to_o be_v then_o will_v he_o not_o be_v a_o eternal_a and_o necessary_o existent_a be_v which_o be_v contradictious_a to_o his_o idea_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o major_n upon_o which_o all_o the_o weight_n lie_v have_v be_v already_o declare_v where_o we_o prove_v before_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o god_n or_o perfect_a be_v we_o can_v never_o have_v have_v any_o conception_n or_o idea_n of_o he_o in_o our_o mind_n because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o positive_a conception_n of_o a_o absolute_a nothing_o that_o which_o have_v neither_o actual_a nor_o possible_a existence_n here_o the_o posture_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v only_o invert_v because_o we_o have_v a_o idea_n of_o god_n or_o a_o perfect_a be_v imply_v no_o manner_n of_o contradiction_n in_o it_o therefore_o must_v it_o needs_o have_v some_o kind_n of_o entity_n or_o other_o either_o a_o actual_a or_o possible_a one_o but_o god_n if_o he_o be_v not_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v therefore_o he_o do_v actual_o exist_v but_o perhaps_o this_o argumentation_n also_o how_o firm_a and_o solid_a soever_o may_v prove_v less_o convictive_a of_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n to_o the_o generality_n because_o whatever_o be_v receive_v be_v receive_v according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o recipient_a and_o though_o a_o demonstration_n be_v never_o so_o good_a in_o itself_o yet_o be_v it_o more_o or_o less_o such_o to_o particular_a person_n according_a to_o their_o ability_n to_o comprehend_v it_o therefore_o shall_v we_o in_o the_o next_o place_n form_n yet_o a_o plain_a demonstration_n for_o a_o god_n from_o the_o idea_n of_o he_o including_z necessary_a existence_n in_o it_o it_o being_n first_o premise_v that_o unquestionable_o something_n or_o other_o do_v exist_v from_o all_o eternity_n without_o beginning_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o every_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v make_v because_o nothing_o can_v come_v from_o nothing_o or_o be_v make_v by_o itself_o and_o therefore_o if_o once_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o there_o can_v never_o have_v be_v any_o thing_n whence_o it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o there_o be_v always_o something_o and_o consequent_o that_o there_o be_v something_o unmake_v which_o exist_v of_o itself_o from_o all_o eternity_n now_o all_o the_o question_n be_v and_o indeed_o this_o be_v the_o only_a question_n betwixt_o theist_n and_o atheist_n since_o something_o do_v certain_o exist_v of_o itself_o from_o all_o eternity_n what_o that_o thing_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a or_o a_o imperfect_a be_v we_o say_v therefore_o that_o whatsoever_o exist_v of_o itself_o
falsity_n of_o this_o be_v sufficient_o evident_a from_o what_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v concern_v humane_a soul_n their_o be_v undoubted_o substance_n incorporeal_a which_o therefore_o can_v never_o be_v generate_v out_o of_o matter_n and_o it_o will_v be_v further_o manifest_v afterward_o but_o the_o three_o and_o last_o sense_n be_v this_o that_o nothing_o which_o be_v material_o make_v out_o of_o thing_n prae-existing_a as_o some_o be_v can_v have_v any_o other_o real_a entity_n than_o what_o be_v either_o before_o contain_v in_o or_o result_v from_o the_o thing_n themselves_o so_o modify_v or_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o new_a entity_n or_o substance_n natural_o generate_v out_o of_o matter_n and_o therefore_o that_o all_o natural_a generation_n be_v real_o nothing_o else_o but_o mixture_n or_o new_a modification_n of_o thing_n prae-existing_a these_o i_o say_v be_v all_o the_o sense_n wherein_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o or_o come_v from_o nothing_o and_o they_o may_v be_v all_o reduce_v to_o this_o one_o general_a sense_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o causal_o or_o that_o nothing_o can_v cause_n any_o thing_n either_o efficient_o or_o material_o which_o as_o it_o be_v undeniable_o true_a so_o be_v it_o so_o far_o from_o make_v any_o thing_n against_o a_o divine_a creation_n or_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v demonstrative_o prove_v and_o evince_v from_o it_o as_o shall_v be_v show_v afterward_o but_o there_o be_v another_o sense_n wherein_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o out_o of_o nothing_o when_o those_o word_n be_v not_o take_v causal_o but_o only_o so_o as_o to_o signify_v the_o terminus_n a_o quo_fw-la or_o term_n from_o which_o they_o be_v make_v to_o wit_n a_o antecedent_n nonexistence_n and_o then_o the_o mean_v of_o this_o proposition_n that_o nothing_o can_v possible_o be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o will_v be_v this_o that_o nothing_o which_o once_o be_v not_o can_v by_o any_o power_n whatsoever_o be_v afterward_o bring_v into_o be_v and_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n insist_v on_o in_o this_o second_o atheistick_a argumentation_n frame_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o democritick_n or_o epicurean_a atheism_n that_o no_o real_a entity_n which_o once_o be_v not_o can_v by_o any_o power_n whatsoever_o be_v make_v or_o bring_v out_o of_o nonexistence_n into_o be_v and_o consequent_o that_o no_o creative_a power_n out_o of_o nothing_o can_v possible_o belong_v to_o any_o thing_n though_o suppose_v never_o so_o perfect_a in_o answer_v whereunto_o we_o shall_v perform_v these_o two_o thing_n first_o we_o shall_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o nothing_o out_o of_o nothing_o take_v in_o this_o sense_n declare_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o common_a notion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o true_a and_o second_o we_o shall_v prove_v that_o if_o it_o be_v true_a yet_o will_v it_o of_o the_o two_o make_v more_o against_o atheism_n than_o it_o do_v against_o theism_n and_o therefore_o ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v by_o atheist_n as_o a_o argument_n against_o a_o deity_n first_o therefore_o it_o be_v unquestionable_o certain_a that_o this_o can_v be_v universal_o true_a that_o nothing_o which_o once_o be_v not_o can_v possible_o be_v make_v or_o bring_v out_o of_o nonexistence_n into_o be_v because_o if_o it_o be_v than_o can_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o make_v or_o cause_v at_o all_o no_o action_n nor_o motion_n and_o consequent_o no_o generation_n nor_o mutation_n in_o the_o corporeal_a universe_n but_o the_o whole_a world_n will_v be_v like_o a_o stiff_a immovable_a adamantine_a rock_n and_o this_o will_v doubtless_o be_v a_o better_a argument_n against_o motion_n than_o any_o of_o zeno_n be_v but_o we_o have_v all_o experience_n within_o ourselves_o of_o a_o power_n of_o produce_v new_a cogitation_n in_o our_o own_o mind_n new_a intellectual_a and_o moral_a habit_n as_o also_o new_a local_a motion_n in_o our_o body_n or_o at_o least_o new_a determination_n thereof_o and_o of_o cause_v thereby_o n●w_a modification_n in_o body_n without_o we_o and_o therefore_o be_v the_o atheist_n force_v to_o restrain_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o proposition_n to_o substantial_a thing_n only_o that_o though_o there_o may_v be_v new_a accident_n and_o modification_n produce_v out_o of_o nothing_o yet_o there_o can_v be_v no_o new_a substance_n make_v however_o they_o be_v not_o able_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o give_v any_o reason_n why_o one_o of_o those_o shall_v be_v in_o itself_o more_o impossible_a than_o the_o other_o or_o why_o no_o substance_n shall_v be_v makeable_a but_o that_o some_o be_v so_o stagger_v with_o the_o seem_v plausibility_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v chief_o upon_o these_o follow_a account_n first_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o confusion_n of_o their_o own_o conception_n for_o because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o nothing_o can_v possible_o be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o in_o one_o sense_n to_o wit_n causal_o they_o not_o distinguish_v sense_n nor_o be_v aware_a of_o the_o equivocation_n that_o be_v in_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o nothing_o inadvertent_o give_v their_o assent_n to_o those_o word_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n that_o no_o substance_n as_o matter_n can_v possible_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o nonexistence_n into_o be_v second_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o unskilful_a argue_n from_o artificial_a thing_n when_o because_o nothing_o can_v be_v artificial_o make_v but_o out_o of_o pre-existing_a matter_n as_o a_o house_n or_o garment_n and_o the_o like_a there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o production_n of_o these_o thing_n but_o only_o a_o new_a modification_n of_o what_o before_o substantial_o be_v they_o over_o hasty_o conclude_v that_o no_o power_n whatsoever_o can_v produce_v any_o thing_n otherwise_o then_o out_o of_o pre-existing_a matter_n and_o that_o matter_n itself_o therefore_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v make_v in_o which_o conceit_n they_o be_v again_o further_o confirm_v from_o hence_o because_o the_o old_a physiologer_n maintain_v the_o same_o thing_n concern_v natural_a generation_n likewise_o that_o nothing_o be_v in_o they_o produce_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o nothing_o neither_o or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o new_a substance_n or_o entity_n make_v in_o they_o real_o distinct_a from_o the_o pre-existing_a matter_n and_o its_o modification_n they_o unwary_o extend_v this_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o physics_n into_o metaphysic_n and_o undue_o measure_v or_o limit_v infinite_a power_n according_o last_o because_o it_o be_v undeniable_o certain_a concern_v ourselves_o and_o all_o imperfect_a create_a being_n that_o none_o of_o these_o can_v create_v any_o new_a substance_n which_o be_v not_o before_o man_n be_v therefore_o apt_a to_o measure_v all_o thing_n by_o their_o own_o scantling_n and_o to_o suppose_v it_o universal_o impossible_a according_a to_o humane_a reason_n for_o any_o power_n whatsoever_o thus_o to_o create_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o theology_n must_v in_o this_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v contradictious_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o natural_a light_n and_o understanding_n but_o since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o imperfect_a create_a being_n can_n themselves_o produce_v some_o thing_n out_o of_o nothing_o pre-existing_a as_o new_a cogitation_n and_o new_a local_a motion_n new_a modification_n and_o transformation_n of_o thing_n corporeal_a it_o be_v very_o reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o a_o absolute_o perfect_a be_v can_v do_v something_o more_o that_o be_v create_v new_a substance_n out_o of_o nothing_o or_o give_v they_o their_o whole_a be_v and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v to_o be_v as_o easie_n for_o god_n or_o a_o omnipotent_a be_v to_o make_v a_o whole_a world_n matter_n and_o all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o nothing_o as_o it_o be_v for_o we_o to_o create_v a_o thought_n or_o to_o move_v a_o finger_n or_o for_o the_o sun_n to_o send_v out_o ray_n or_o a_o candle_n light_n or_o last_o for_o any_o opake_v body_n to_o produce_v the_o image_n of_o itself_o in_o glass_n or_o water_n or_o to_o project_v a_o shadow_n all_o these_o imperfect_a thing_n be_v but_o the_o the_o contrary_a we_o shall_v make_v it_o manifest_a that_o this_o very_a principle_n make_v use_v of_o by_o the_o atheist_n be_v in_o truth_n and_o reality_n contradictious_a to_o all_o manner_n of_o atheism_n and_o destructive_a of_o the_o same_o the_o atheist_n universal_o generate_a and_o corrupt_v real_a entity_n and_o substantial_a thing_n that_o be_v produce_v they_o out_o of_o nothing_o or_o nonexistence_n and_o reduce_v they_o to_o nothing_o again_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o make_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o the_o bare_a substance_n of_o matter_n only_o except_v which_o to_o they_o be_v either_o
of_o sense_n and_o understanding_n or_o the_o entity_n of_o soul_n and_o mind_n can_v never_o have_v result_v from_o any_o modification_n of_o senseless_a matter_n whatsoever_o wherefore_o since_o it_o be_v mathematical_o certain_a that_o our_o humane_a soul_n and_o person_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v be_v generate_v out_o of_o matter_n one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n will_v undeniable_o follow_v that_o either_o they_o must_v all_o have_v exi_v of_o themselves_o from_o eternity_n unmake_v or_o else_o have_v be_v create_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o a_o antecedent_n nonexistence_n by_o a_o perfect_a understanding_n be_v unmake_v or_o atlea_v have_v derive_v their_o whole_a substance_n from_o it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v altogether_o as_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n as_o that_o our_o humane_a soul_n and_o person_n do_v not_o all_o exist_v from_o eternity_n of_o themselves_o and_o that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o eternal_a unmake_v mind_n have_v be_v already_o demonstrate_v also_o from_o the_o same_o principle_n nothing_o out_o of_o nothing_o thus_o have_v we_o abundant_o confute_v the_o second_o atheistick_a argumentation_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o omnipotence_n nor_o divine_a creation_n because_o nothing_o can_v be_v make_v out_o of_o nothing_o we_o have_v plain_o show_v that_o this_o very_a principle_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o afford_v a_o demonstration_n for_o the_o contrary_a the_o six_o follow_v atheistick_a argumentation_n drive_v at_o these_o two_o thing_n first_o the_o disprove_v of_o a_o incorporeal_a and_o then_o of_o a_o corporeal_a deity_n from_o both_o which_o the_o atheist_n conceive_v it_o must_v follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o there_o can_v be_v none_o at_o all_o we_o shall_v take_v they_o all_o together_o and_o in_o order_n to_o the_o confutation_n of_o they_o perform_v these_o three_o thing_n first_o we_o shall_v answer_v the_o atheistick_a argumentation_n against_o a_o incorporeal_a deity_n contain_v in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o head_n second_o we_o shall_v show_v that_o from_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o the_o atheistick_a corporealism_n as_o represent_v in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o head_n incorporeal_a substance_n be_v demonstrable_a and_o last_o that_o there_o be_v undeniable_o incorporeal_a substance_n the_o two_o follow_v atheistick_a argumentation_n also_o against_o a_o corporeal_a deity_n in_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o section_n prove_v altogether_o insignificant_a we_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o of_o these_o to_o show_v the_o invalidity_n of_o the_o atheistick_a argumentation_n against_o a_o incorporeal_a deity_n it_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v that_o though_o all_o corporealist_n be_v not_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n atheist_n yet_o atheist_n universal_o have_v be_v corporealist_n this_o be_v always_o their_o first_o and_o grand_fw-fr postulatum_fw-la that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o substance_n beside_o body_n thus_o plato_n long_o ago_o declare_v concern_v they_o fie_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o contend_v strong_o that_o that_o only_o real_o be_v which_o be_v tangible_a or_o can_v resist_v their_o touch_n conclude_v body_n and_o substance_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a thing_n and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v affirm_v that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n incorporeal_a they_o will_v present_o cry_v he_o down_o and_o not_o hear_v a_o word_n more_o from_o he_o for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o person_n here_o intend_v by_o plato_n be_v those_o very_a atheist_n which_o himself_o speak_v of_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o dialogue_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whether_o shall_v we_o assent_v to_o that_o opinion_n n●w_v adays_o entertain_v by_o so_o many_o that_o nature_n generate_v all_o thing_n from_o a_o certain_a fortuitous_a cause_n without_o the_o direction_n of_o any_o mind_n or_o understanding_n or_o rather_o that_o it_o produce_v they_o according_a to_o reason_n and_o knowledge_n proceed_v from_o god_n indeed_o the_o philosopher_n there_o tell_v we_o that_o some_o of_o these_o atheistick_a person_n begin_v then_o to_o be_v somewhat_o ashamed_a of_o make_v prudence_n and_o justice_n and_o other_o moral_a virtue_n corporeal_a thing_n or_o body_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o they_o affirm_v concern_v the_o soul_n itself_o that_o this_o seem_v to_o they_o to_o be_v corporeal_a yet_o concern_v prudence_n and_o those_o other_o virtue_n mention_v some_o have_v now_o scarce_o the_o confidence_n to_o maintain_v these_o to_o be_v either_o body_n or_o nothing_o but_o this_o say_v he_o be_v indeed_o no_o less_o than_o the_o quite_o give_v up_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o atheism_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o if_o it_o be_v but_o once_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v never_o so_o little_a incorporeal_a this_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v the_o atheistiek_n foundation_n wherefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o such_o as_o these_o be_v but_o mongrel_n and_o imperfect_a atheist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o they_o who_o be_v thorough-paced_n and_o genuine_a atheist_n indeed_o will_v bogle_v at_o neither_o of_o those_o forementioned_a thing_n but_o contend_v that_o whatsoever_o they_o can_v grasp_v with_o their_o hand_n be_v altogether_o nothing_o that_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o substance_n nor_o entity_n in_o the_o world_n but_o only_a body_n that_o which_o be_v tangible_a or_o resist_v the_o touch._n aristotle_n also_o represent_v the_o atheistick_a hypothesis_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o affirm_v that_o matter_n or_o body_n be_v all_o the_o substance_n that_o be_v and_o that_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v but_o the_o passion_n and_o affection_n thereof_o and_o again_o in_o his_o metaphysic_n 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d these_o man_n maintain_v all_o to_o be_v one_o and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a nature_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o this_o corporeal_a or_o endue_v with_o magnitude_n and_o now_o we_o see_v plain_o that_o the_o ancient_a atheist_n be_v of_o the_o very_a same_o mind_n with_o these_o in_o our_o day_n that_o body_n or_o that_o which_o be_v tangible_a and_o divisible_a be_v the_o only_a substantial_a thing_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o a_o incorporeal_a substance_n will_v be_v the_o same_o with_o a_o incorporeal_a body_n i._n e._n a_o impossibility_n and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o incorporeal_a deity_n but_o in_o the_o management_n of_o this_o cause_n there_o have_v be_v some_o disagreement_n among_o the_o atheist_n themselves_o for_o first_o the_o democritick_n and_o epicurean_o though_o consent_v with_o all_o the_o other_o atheist_n in_o this_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v vnextend_v and_o devoid_a of_o magnitude_n be_v therefore_o nothing_o so_o that_o there_o can_v neither_o be_v any_o substance_n nor_o accident_n or_o mode_n of_o any_o substance_n vnextend_v do_v notwithstanding_o distinguish_v concern_v a_o double_a nature_n first_o that_o which_o be_v so_o extend_v as_o to_o be_v impenetrable_a and_o tangible_a or_o resist_v the_o touch_n which_o be_v body_n and_o second_o that_o which_o be_v extend_v also_o but_o penetrable_o and_o intangible_o which_o be_v space_n or_o vacuum_n a_o nature_n according_a to_o they_o real_o distinct_a from_o body_n and_o the_o only_a incorporeal_a thing_n that_o be_v now_o since_o this_o space_n which_o be_v the_o only_a incorporeal_a can_v neither_o do_v nor_o suffer_v any_o thing_n but_o only_o give_v place_n or_o room_n to_o body_n to_o subsist_v in_o or_o pass_v through_o therefore_o can_v there_o not_o be_v any_o active_a understanding_n incorporeal_a deity_n this_o be_v the_o argumentation_n of_o the_o democritick_n atheist_n to_o which_o we_o reply_v that_o if_o space_n be_v indeed_o a_o nature_n distinct_a from_o body_n and_o a_o thing_n real_o incorporeal_a as_o they_o pretend_v then_o will_v it_o undeniable_o follow_v from_o this_o very_a principle_n of_o they_o that_o there_o must_v be_v incorporeal_a substance_n and_o this_o space_n be_v suppose_v by_o they_o also_o to_o be_v infinite_a a_o infinite_a incorporeal_a deity_n because_o if_o space_n be_v not_o the_o extension_n of_o body_n nor_o a_o affection_n thereof_o then_o must_v it_o of_o necessity_n be_v either_o a_o accident_n exist_v alone_o by_o itself_o without_o a_o substance_n which_o be_v impossible_a or_o else_o the_o extension_n or_o affection_n of_o some_o other_o incorporeal_a substance_n that_o be_v infinite_a but_o here_o will_v gassendus_fw-la step_n in_o to_o help_v out_o his_o good_a friend_n the_o democritick_n and_o epicurean_o at_o a_o dead_a lift_v and_o undertake_v to_o maintain_v that_o though_o space_n be_v indeed_o a_o incorporeal_a thing_n yet_o it_o will_v neither_o follow_v of_o necessity_n from_o thence_o that_o it_o be_v a_o incorporeal_a substance_n or_o affection_n thereof_o nor_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v a_o accident_n exist_v alone_o by_o itself_o without_o a_o substance_n because_o this_o space_n be_v real_o neither_o accident_n nor_o
betwixt_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o resurrection_n or_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v say_v to_o suffer_v such_o a_o fire_n as_o can_v do_v no_o execution_n upon_o those_o who_o have_v no_o wood_n hay_o nor_o stubble_n to_o burn_v up_o but_o shall_v be_v feel_v by_o such_o as_o have_v make_v such_o building_n or_o superstructure_n etc._n etc._n i_o reprehend_v it_o not_o because_o perhaps_o it_o be_v true_a the_o opinion_n here_o mention_v be_v thus_o express_v by_o origen_n in_o his_o five_o book_n against_o celsus_n which_o very_a place_n st._n austin_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v respect_n to_o 240_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d celsus_n do_v not_o understand_v that_o this_o fire_n as_o well_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o christian_n as_o to_o some_o of_o the_o greek_n will_v be_v purgatory_n to_o the_o world_n as_o also_o to_o every_o one_o of_o those_o person_n who_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o punishment_n and_o remedy_n by_o fire_n which_o fire_n can_v do_v no_o execution_n upon_o those_o who_o have_v no_o combustible_a matter_n in_o they_o but_o will_v be_v feel_v by_o such_o as_o in_o the_o moral_a structure_n of_o their_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n have_v build_v up_o wood_n hay_o and_o stubble_n now_o since_o soul_n can_v suffer_v from_o fire_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o way_n of_o sense_n or_o pain_n without_o be_v vital_o unite_v to_o some_o body_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o st._n austin_n when_o he_o write_v this_o be_v not_o altogether_o abhorrent_n from_o soul_n have_v body_n after_o death_n hitherto_o have_v we_o declare_v how_o the_o ancient_a asserter_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n as_o vnextend_v do_v repel_v the_o assault_n of_o atheist_n and_o corporealist_n make_v against_o it_o but_o especial_o how_o they_o quit_v themselves_o of_o that_o absurdity_n of_o the_o illocality_n and_o immobility_n of_o finite_a create_v spirit_n by_o suppose_v they_o always_o to_o be_v vital_o unite_v to_o some_o body_n and_o consequent_o by_o the_o locality_n of_o those_o their_o respective_a body_n determine_v to_o here_o and_o there_o according_a to_o that_o of_o origen_n 5.244_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d our_o soul_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o body_n in_o order_n to_o local_a motion_n we_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n declare_v what_o ground_n of_o reason_n there_o be_v which_o induce_v those_o ancient_n to_o assert_v and_o maintain_v a_o thing_n so_o repugnant_a to_o sense_n and_o imagination_n and_o consequent_o to_o all_o vulgar_a apprehension_n as_o a_o substance_n in_o itself_o vnextend_v indistant_a and_o indivisible_a or_o devoid_a of_o magnitude_n and_o part_n wherein_o we_o shall_v only_o represent_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o ancient_a incorporealist_n so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v to_o the_o best_a advantage_n in_o order_n to_o their_o vindication_n against_o atheist_n and_o materialist_n ourselves_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n not_o assert_v any_o thing_n but_o leave_v every_o one_o that_o can_v to_o make_v his_o own_o judgement_n and_o so_o either_o to_o close_v with_o this_o or_o that_o other_o follow_a hypothesis_n of_o extend_v incorporeal_n now_o it_o be_v here_o observable_a that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n former_o take_v for_o grant_v on_o both_o side_n as_o well_o by_o the_o asserter_n as_o the_o denier_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o kind_n of_o extension_n only_o and_o consequent_o that_o whatsoever_o have_v magnitude_n and_o part_n or_o one_o thing_n without_o another_o be_v not_o only_o intellectual_o and_o logical_o but_o also_o real_o and_o physical_o divisible_a or_o discerpible_a as_o likewise_o antitypous_a and_o impenetrable_a so_o that_o it_o can_v coexi_v with_o a_o body_n in_o the_o same_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o whatsoever_o argument_n do_v evince_n that_o there_o be_v some_o other_o substance_n beside_o body_n the_o same_o do_v therefore_o demonstrate_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o ancient_n as_o well_o corporealist_n as_o incorporealist_n that_o there_o be_v something_o vnextend_v it_o be_v suppose_v by_o they_o both_o alike_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v extend_v be_v body_n nevertheless_o we_o shall_v here_o principal_o propound_v such_o consideration_n of_o they_o as_o tend_v direct_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v something_o vnextend_o incorporeal_a and_o that_o a_o vnextended_a deity_n be_v no_o impossible_a idea_n to_o wit_n from_o hence_o because_o there_o be_v something_o vnextend_v even_o in_o our_o very_a self_n where_o not_o to_o repeat_v the_o forementioned_a ratiocination_n of_o simplicius_n that_o whatsoever_o can_v act_n and_o reflect_v upon_o its_o whole_a self_n can_v possible_o be_v extend_v nor_o have_v part_n distant_a from_o one_o another_o plotinus_n first_o argue_v after_o this_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 460._o what_o then_o will_v they_o say_v who_o contend_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o body_n or_o extend_v whether_o for_o no_o will_v they_o grant_v concern_v every_o part_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o same_o body_n as_o that_o of_o it_o which_o be_v in_o the_o foot_n and_o that_o in_o the_o hand_n and_o that_o in_o the_o brain_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o every_o part_n of_o those_o part_n that_o each_o of_o they_o be_v soul_n such_o as_o the_o whole_a if_o this_o be_v consent_v to_o then_o be_v it_o plain_a that_o magnitude_n or_o such_o a_o quantity_n will_v confer_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o it_o will_v do_v be_v it_o a_o extend_v thing_n but_o the_o whole_a will_v be_v in_o many_o part_n or_o place_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o can_v possible_o belong_v to_o body_n that_o the_o same_o whole_a shall_v be_v in_o more_o and_o that_o a_o part_n shall_v be_v what_o the_o whole_a be_v but_o if_o they_o will_v not_o grant_v every_o part_n of_o their_o extend_v soul_n to_o be_v soul_n then_o according_a to_o they_o must_v the_o soul_n be_v make_v up_o and_o compound_v of_o soul-less_a thing_n which_o argument_n be_v else_o where_o again_o thus_o propound_v by_o he_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o every_o one_o of_o the_o part_n of_o this_o extend_v soul_n or_o mind_n have_v life_n in_o it_o than_o will_v any_o one_o of_o they_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a but_o to_o say_v that_o though_o none_o of_o the_o part_n alone_o bave_v life_n in_o they_o yet_o the_o conjunction_n of_o they_o altogether_o make_v life_n be_v absurd_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o life_n and_o soul_n shall_v result_v from_o a_o congery_n of_o lifeless_a and_o souless_a thing_n or_o that_o mindless_a thing_n put_v together_o shall_v beget_v mind_n the_o sum_n of_o this_o argumentation_n be_v this_o that_o either_o every_o part_n of_o a_o extend_v soul_n be_v soul_n and_o of_o a_o extend_v mind_n mind_n or_o not_o now_o if_o no_o part_n of_o a_o soul_n as_o suppose_v to_o be_v extend_v alone_o be_v soul_n or_o have_v life_n and_o mind_n in_o it_o then_o be_v it_o certain_a that_o the_o whole_a result_v from_o all_o the_o part_n can_v have_v no_o life_n nor_o mind_n because_o nothing_o can_v causal_o come_v from_o nothing_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o corporeal_a quality_n and_o form_n according_a to_o the_o atomick_a physiology_n result_n from_o a_o composition_n and_o contexture_n of_o atom_n or_o part_n each_o of_o which_o take_v alone_o by_o themselves_o have_v nothing_o of_o that_o quality_n or_o form_n in_o they_o ne_fw-fr ex_fw-la albis_n alba_n rearis_fw-la aut_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la nigrant_fw-la nigro_n de_fw-fr semine_fw-la nata_fw-la you_o be_v not_o to_o think_v that_o white_a thing_n be_v make_v out_o of_o white_a principle_n nor_o black_a thing_n out_o of_o black_a but_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n here_o be_v plain_a because_o these_o quality_n and_o form_n be_v not_o entity_n real_o distinct_a from_o the_o magnitude_n figure_n site_n and_o motion_n of_o part_n but_o only_o such_o a_o composition_n of_o they_o as_o cause_v different_a fancy_n in_o we_o but_o life_n and_o understanding_n soul_n and_o mind_n be_v entity_n real_o distinct_a from_o magnitude_n figure_n site_n and_o motion_n of_o part_n they_o be_v neither_o mere_a fancy_n nor_o syllable_n of_o thing_n but_o simple_a and_o uncompounded_a reality_n but_o if_o every_o suppose_a part_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v soul_n and_o of_o a_o mind_n mind_n then_o will_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o it_o beside_o any_o one_o part_n be_v superfluous_a or_o indeed_o every_o suppose_a part_n thereof_o will_v be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o whole_a from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v extend_v or_o have_v any_o real_a part_n at_o all_o since_o no_o part_n of_o a_o extend_v thing_n can_v possible_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o whole_a again_o the_o same_o philosopher_n endeavour_v further_a to_o prove_v
however_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o atheist_n who_o maintain_v the_o contrary_a must_v needs_o assert_v that_o every_o thought_n and_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o soul_n mind_n as_o knowledge_n virtue_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o only_o mental_o and_o mathematical_o divisible_a so_o that_o there_o may_v be_v half_a a_o three_o part_n or_o a_o quarter_n of_o a_o thought_n and_o the_o rest_n suppose_v but_o also_o physical_o separable_a or_o discerpible_a together_o with_o the_o soul_n wherein_o it_o be_v they_o must_v also_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o internal_a energy_n at_o all_o or_o any_o other_o action_n beside_o that_o outside_o superficial_a action_n of_o local_a motion_n and_o consequent_o make_v all_o cogitation_n nothing_o but_o local_a motion_n or_o translation_n and_o last_o they_o must_v maintain_v that_o no_o substance_n can_v co-exist_a with_o any_o other_o substance_n as_o soul_n with_o body_n otherwise_o than_o by_o juxta-position_n only_o and_o by_o possess_v the_o pore_n or_o fill_v up_o the_o interval_n thereof_o as_o a_o net_n with_o the_o water_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o answer_n to_o the_o forementioned_a atheistick_a argument_n against_o incorporeal_a substance_n that_o though_o whatsoever_o be_v extend_v be_v body_n yet_o every_o thing_n be_v not_o extend_v but_o that_o life_n and_o mind_n or_o cogitation_n be_v a_o vnextend_v indistant_a and_o indivisible_a nature_n but_o as_o we_o have_v already_o intimate_v there_o be_v other_o learned_a asserter_n of_o incorporeal_a substance_n who_o lest_o god_n and_o spirit_n be_v thus_o make_v vnextend_v shall_v quite_o vanish_v into_o nothing_o answer_v that_o atheistick_a argumentation_n after_o a_o different_a manner_n by_o grant_v to_o these_o atheist_n that_o proposition_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v be_v extend_v and_o what_o be_v vnextend_v be_v nothing_o but_o then_o deny_v that_o other_o of_o they_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v extend_v be_v body_n they_o assert_v another_o extension_n specifical_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o body_n for_o whereas_o corporeal_a extension_n be_v not_o only_o impenetrable_a so_o as_o that_o no_o one_o part_n thereof_o can_v enter_v into_o another_o but_o also_o both_o mental_o and_o real_o divisible_a one_o part_n be_v in_o its_o nature_n separable_a from_o another_o they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v another_o incorporeal_a extension_n which_o be_v both_o penetrable_a and_o also_o indiscerpible_a so_o that_o no_o one_o part_v thereof_o can_v possible_o be_v separate_v from_o another_o or_o the_o whole_a and_o that_o to_o such_o a_o incorporeal_a extension_n as_o this_o belong_v life_n cogitation_n and_o understanding_n the_o deity_n have_v such_o a_o infinite_a extension_n but_o all_o create_a spirit_n a_o finite_a and_o limit_a one_o which_o also_o be_v in_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v contractible_a and_o dilatable_a now_o it_o be_v not_o our_o part_n here_o to_o oppose_v theist_n but_o atheist_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v leave_v these_o two_o sort_n of_o incorporealist_n to_o dispute_v it_o out_o friendly_a among_o themselves_o and_o indeed_o therefore_o with_o the_o more_o moderation_n equanimity_n and_o toleration_n of_o dissent_n mutual_o because_o it_o seem_v that_o some_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n fatal_o incline_v to_o think_v one_o way_n in_o this_o controversy_n and_o some_o another_o and_o what_o ever_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o case_n be_v it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o latter_a hypothesis_n may_v be_v very_o useful_a and_o serviceable_a to_o retain_v some_o in_o theism_n who_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n admit_v of_o a_o deity_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o vnextend_v though_o perhaps_o there_o will_v not_o be_v want_v other_o also_o who_o will_v go_v in_o a_o middle_a way_n betwixt_o these_o two_o or_o compound_v they_o together_o by_o suppose_v the_o deity_n to_o be_v indeed_o altogether_o vnextend_v and_o all_o of_o it_o every_o where_o but_o finite_a incorporeal_n or_o create_v spirit_n to_o have_v a_o vnextended_a inside_n a_o life_n or_o mind_n diffuse_v itself_o into_o a_o certain_a amplitude_n of_o outward_a extension_n whereby_o they_o be_v determine_v to_o a_o place_n yet_o so_o as_o to_o be_v all_o in_o every_o part_n thereof_o which_o outward_a extension_n be_v therefore_o not_o to_o be_v account_v body_n because_o penetrable_a contractable_a and_o dilatable_a and_o because_o no_o one_o part_n thereof_o be_v separable_a from_o the_o rest_n by_o the_o rushing_n or_o incursion_n of_o any_o corporeal_a thing_n upon_o they_o and_o thus_o be_v the_o atheist_n argument_n against_o incorporeal_a substance_n answer_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o that_o there_o be_v something_o vnextend_v and_o second_o that_o if_o there_o be_v none_o yet_o must_v there_o of_o necessity_n be_v a_o substance_n otherwise_o extend_v than_o body_n be_v so_o as_o to_o be_v neither_o antitypous_a nor_o discerpible_a and_o ourselves_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v here_o dogmatical_o to_o assert_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o point_n save_v only_o what_o all_o incorporealist_n do_v agree_v in_o to_o wit_n that_o beside_o body_n which_o be_v impenetrable_o and_o divisible_o extend_v there_o be_v in_o nature_n another_o substance_n that_o be_v both_o penetrable_a of_o body_n and_o indiscerpible_a or_o which_o do_v not_o consist_v of_o part_n separable_a from_o one_o another_o and_o that_o there_o be_v at_o least_o such_o a_o substance_n as_o this_o be_v unquestionable_o manifest_a from_o what_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v but_o the_o atheist_n will_v in_o the_o next_o place_n give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o original_a of_o this_o error_n as_o he_o call_v it_o of_o incorporeal_a substance_n and_o undertake_v to_o show_v from_o what_o mistake_v it_o proceed_v which_o be_v yet_o another_o pretend_a confutation_n thereof_o namely_o that_o it_o spring_v partly_o from_o the_o abuse_n of_o abstract_a name_n and_o notion_n man_n make_v substance_n of_o they_o and_o partly_o from_o the_o scholastic_a essence_n distinct_a from_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o say_v to_o be_v eternal_a from_o both_o which_o delusion_n and_o dotage_n together_o the_o atheist_n conceive_v that_o man_n have_v be_v first_o of_o all_o much_o confirm_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o ghost_n and_o spirit_n demon_n and_o devil_n invisible_a being_n call_v by_o several_a name_n which_o belief_n have_v also_o another_o original_a man_n mistake_v their_o own_o fancy_n for_o reality_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o which_o affrightful_a ghost_n and_o spectre_n according_a to_o these_o atheist_n be_v the_o deity_n the_o oberon_n or_o prince_n of_o fairy_n and_o fancy_n but_o then_o whereas_o man_n by_o their_o natural_a reason_n can_v not_o conceive_v otherwise_o of_o these_o ghost_n and_o spirit_n then_o that_o they_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o thin_a aerial_a body_n their_o understanding_n have_v be_v so_o enchant_a by_o these_o abstract_a name_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o name_n of_o nothing_o and_o those_o separate_a essence_n and_o quiddity_n of_o scholastics_n as_o that_o they_o have_v make_v incorporeal_a substance_n of_o they_o the_o atheistick_a conclusion_n be_v that_o they_o who_o assert_v a_o incorporeal_a deity_n do_v real_o but_o make_v a_o scholastic_a separate_a essence_n or_o the_o mere_a abstract_a notion_n of_o a_o accident_n a_o substantial_a thing_n and_o a_o ghost_n or_o spirit_n preside_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o which_o our_o reply_n in_o general_n first_o of_o all_o be_v that_o all_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o idle_a romantic_a fiction_n the_o belief_n of_o a_o deity_n and_o substance_n incorporeal_a stand_v upon_o none_o of_o those_o imaginary_a foundation_n and_o then_o as_o for_o that_o impudent_a atheistick_a pretence_n that_o the_o deity_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o figment_n or_o creature_n of_o man_n fear_n and_o imagination_n and_o therefore_o the_o prince_n of_o fairy_n and_o fancy_n this_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o confute_v 663._o in_o our_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o atheistick_a argumentation_n where_o we_o have_v also_o over_o and_o above_o show_v that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o natural_a prolepsis_n or_o anticipation_n of_o a_o god_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o also_o that_o the_o belief_n thereof_o be_v support_v by_o the_o strong_a and_o most_o substantial_a reason_n his_o existence_n be_v indeed_o demonstrable_a with_o mathematical_a evidence_n to_o such_o as_o be_v capable_a and_o not_o blind_v with_o prejudice_n nor_o enchant_a by_o the_o witchcraft_n of_o vice_n and_o wickedness_n to_o the_o debauch_v of_o their_o understanding_n it_o have_v be_v also_o show_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o ghost_n and_o spirit_n beside_o the_o deity_n spring_v not_o mere_o from_o fear_n and_o fancy_n neither_o as_o child_n bugbear_n but_o from_o real_a phaenomena_n true_a sensible_a apparition_n with_o the_o history_n of_o they_o in_o all_o age_n without_o which_o the_o belief_n of_o such_o thing_n can_v never_o have_v hold_v up_o so_o general_o and_o constant_o in_o the_o world_n as_o likewise_o that_o there_o be_v no_o
body_n and_o its_o modification_n but_o yet_o generable_a out_o of_o it_o and_o corruptible_a into_o it_o they_o conclude_v that_o as_o light_v and_o colour_n heat_v and_o cold_a etc._n etc._n according_a to_o those_o fancy_n which_o we_o have_v of_o they_o be_v real_a quality_n of_o matter_n distinct_a from_o its_o substance_n and_o modification_n so_o may_v life_n sense_n and_o cogitation_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n quality_n of_o matter_n also_o generable_a and_o corruptible_a but_o these_o real_a quality_n of_o body_n in_o the_o sense_n declare_v be_v thing_n that_o be_v long_o since_o just_o explode_v by_o the_o ancient_a atomist_n and_o expunge_v out_o of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o entity_n of_o who_o laertius_n have_v record_v that_o they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d quite_o cashier_v and_o banish_v quality_n out_o of_o their_o philosophy_n they_o resolve_v all_o corporeal_a phaenomena_n and_o therefore_o those_o of_o heat_n and_o cold_a light_a and_o colour_n fire_n and_o flame_n etc._n etc._n intelligible_o into_o nothing_o but_o the_o different_a modification_n of_o extend_v substance_n viz._n more_o or_o less_o magnitude_n of_o part_n figure_n site_n motion_n or_o rest_n or_o the_o combination_n of_o they_o and_o those_o different_a fancy_n cause_v in_o we_o by_o they_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o other_o entity_n but_o substance_n and_o its_o modification_n wherefore_o the_o democritick_n and_o epicurean_o do_v most_o shameful_o contradict_v themselves_o when_o pretend_v to_o reject_v and_o explode_v all_o those_o entity_n of_o real_a quality_n themselves_o nevertheless_o make_v life_n and_o understanding_n such_o real_a quality_n of_o matter_n generable_a out_o of_o it_o and_o corruptible_a again_o into_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o body_n or_o matter_n but_o magnitude_n figure_n site_n and_o motion_n or_o rest_n now_o it_o be_v mathematical_o certain_a that_o these_o however_o combine_a together_a can_v never_o possible_o compound_v or_o make_v up_o life_n or_o cogitation_n which_o therefore_o can_v be_v a_o accident_n of_o matter_n but_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o substantial_a thing_n we_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o that_o life_n improper_o so_o call_v which_o be_v in_o vulgar_a speech_n attribute_v to_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o animal_n for_o it_o be_v plain_o accidental_a to_o a_o body_n to_o be_v vital_o unite_v to_o a_o soul_n or_o not_o therefore_o be_v this_o life_n of_o the_o compound_v corruptible_a and_o destroyable_a without_o the_o destruction_n of_o any_o real_a entity_n there_o be_v nothing_o destroy_v nor_o lose_v to_o the_o universe_n in_o the_o death_n of_o man_n and_o animal_n as_o such_o but_o only_o a_o disunion_n or_o separation_n make_v of_o those_o two_o substance_n soul_n and_o body_n one_o from_o another_o but_o we_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o original_a life_n of_o the_o soul_n itself_o that_o this_o be_v substantial_a neither_o generable_a nor_o corruptible_a but_o only_o creatable_a and_o annihilable_a by_o the_o deity_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o that_o which_o rule_n and_o command_n in_o the_o body_n of_o animal_n move_v they_o up_o and_o down_o and_o have_v sense_n or_o perception_n in_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o substantial_a as_o that_o stupid_a and_o senseless_a matter_n that_o be_v rule_v by_o it_o neither_o can_v matter_n which_o be_v also_o but_o a_o mere_a passive_a thing_n efficient_o produce_v soul_n any_o more_o than_o soul_n matter_n no_o finite_a imperfect_a substance_n be_v able_a to_o produce_v another_o substance_n out_o of_o nothing_o much_o less_o can_v such_o a_o substance_n as_o have_v a_o low_a degree_n of_o entity_n and_o perfection_n in_o it_o create_v that_o which_o have_v a_o high_a there_o be_v a_o scale_n or_o ladder_n of_o entity_n and_o perfection_n in_o the_o universe_n one_o above_o another_o and_o the_o production_n of_o thing_n can_v possible_o be_v in_o way_n of_o ascent_n from_o low_a to_o high_a but_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v in_o way_n of_o descent_n from_o high_a to_o low_o now_o to_o produce_v any_o one_o high_a rank_n of_o be_v from_o the_o low_a as_o cogitation_n from_o magnitude_n and_o body_n be_v plain_o to_o invert_v this_o order_n in_o the_o scale_n of_o the_o universe_n from_o downward_o to_o upward_o and_o therefore_o be_v it_o atheistical_a and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o one_o high_a rank_n or_o degree_n in_o this_o scale_n be_v thus_o unnatural_o produce_v from_o a_o low_a may_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o produce_v also_o wherefore_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o stand_v upon_o our_o guard_n here_o and_o to_o defend_v this_o post_n against_o the_o atheist_n that_o no_o life_n or_o cogitation_n can_v either_o material_o or_o efficient_o result_v from_o dead_a and_o senseless_a body_n or_o that_o soul_n be_v all_o substantial_a and_o immaterial_a thing_n can_v neither_o be_v generate_v out_o of_o matter_n nor_o corrupt_v into_o the_o same_o but_o only_o create_v or_o annihilate_v by_o the_o deity_n the_o grand_a objection_n against_o this_o substantiality_n of_o soul_n sensitive_a as_o well_o as_o rational_a be_v from_o that_o consequence_n which_o will_v be_v from_o thence_o infer_v of_o their_o permanent_a subsistence_n after_o death_n their_o perpetuity_n or_o immortality_n this_o seem_a very_o absurd_a that_o the_o soul_n of_o brute_n also_o shall_v be_v immortal_a or_o subsist_v after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o respective_a animal_n but_o especial_o to_o two_o sort_n of_o man_n first_o such_o as_o scarce_o in_o good_a earnest_n believe_v their_o own_o soul_n immortality_n and_o second_o such_o religionist_n as_o conclude_v that_o if_o irrational_a or_o sensitive_a soul_n subsist_v after_o death_n then_o must_v they_o needs_o go_v present_o either_o into_o heaven_n or_o hell_n and_o r._n cartesius_n be_v so_o sensible_a of_o the_o offensiveness_n of_o this_o opinion_n that_o though_o he_o be_v full_o convince_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o disjunction_n that_o either_o brute_n have_v nothing_o of_o sense_n or_o cogitation_n at_o all_o or_o else_o they_o must_v have_v some_o other_o substance_n in_o they_o beside_o matter_n he_o choose_v rather_o to_o make_v they_o mere_a senseless_a machines_n then_o to_o allow_v they_o substantial_a soul_n wherein_o avoid_v a_o lesser_a absurdity_n or_o paradox_n he_o plain_o plunge_v himself_o into_o a_o great_a scarce_o any_o thing_n be_v more_o general_o receive_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o brute_n though_o in_o truth_n all_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o substantiality_n of_o sensitive_a soul_n and_o will_v have_v brute_n to_o have_v nothing_o but_o matter_n in_o they_o ought_v consequent_o according_a to_o reason_n to_o do_v as_o cartesius_n do_v deprive_v they_o of_o all_o sense_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o phaenomena_n that_o brute_n be_v not_o mere_a senseless_a machines_n or_o automata_n and_o only_o like_o clock_n or_o watch_n than_o ought_v not_o popular_a opinion_n and_o vulgar_a prejudice_n so_o far_o to_o prevail_v with_o we_o as_o to_o hinder_v our_o assent_n to_o that_o which_o sound_a reason_n and_o philosophy_n clear_o dictate_v that_o therefore_o they_o must_v have_v something_o more_o than_o matter_n in_o they_o neither_o ought_v we_o when_o we_o clear_o conceive_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a as_o this_o that_o life_n and_o cogitation_n can_v possible_o rise_v out_o of_o dead_a and_o senseless_a matter_n to_o abandon_v it_o or_o deny_v our_o assent_n thereunto_o because_o we_o find_v it_o attend_v with_o some_o difficulty_n not_o easy_o extricable_a by_o we_o or_o can_v free_v all_o the_o consequence_n thereof_o from_o some_o inconvenience_n or_o absurdity_n such_o as_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o the_o permanent_a subsistence_n of_o brutish_a soul_n for_o the_o give_v a_o account_n of_o which_o notwithstanding_o plato_n and_o the_o ancient_a pythagorean_n propose_v this_o follow_a hypothesis_n that_o soul_n as_o well_o sensitive_a as_o rational_a be_v all_o substantial_a but_o not_o selfexistent_a because_o there_o be_v but_o one_o fountain_n and_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v therefore_o produce_v or_o cause_v by_o the_o deity_n but_o this_o not_o in_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o respective_a animal_n it_o be_v indecorous_a that_o this_o divine_a miraculous_a creative_a power_n shall_v constant_o lackey_n by_o and_o attend_v upon_o natural_a generation_n as_o also_o incongruous_a that_o soul_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o junior_n to_o every_o atom_n of_o dust_n that_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o either_o all_o of_o they_o from_o eternity_n according_a to_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o novity_n of_o the_o world_n or_o rather_o according_a to_o other_o who_o assert_v the_o cosmogonia_n in_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n creation_n wherefore_o it_o be_v also_o natural_a to_o soul_n as_o such_o to_o actuate_v and_o enliven_v some_o body_n or_o to_o be_v as_o it_o
be_v clothe_v therewith_o these_o as_o soon_o as_o create_v be_v immediate_o invest_v with_o certain_a thin_a and_o subtle_a body_n or_o put_v into_o light_n ethereal_a or_o aereal_a chariot_n and_o vehicles_n wherein_o they_o subsist_v both_o before_o their_o entrance_n into_o other_o gross_a terrestrial_a body_n and_o after_o their_o egress_n out_o of_o they_o so_o that_o the_o soul_n not_o only_o of_o man_n but_o also_o of_o other_o animal_n have_v sometime_o a_o thick_a and_o sometime_o a_o thin_a indument_n or_o clothing_n and_o thus_o do_v we_o understand_v boetius_fw-la not_o only_o of_o the_o rational_a but_o also_o of_o the_o other_o inferior_a sensitive_a soul_n in_o these_o verse_n of_o he_o tu_fw-la causis_fw-la animas_fw-la paribus_fw-la vitasque_fw-la minores_fw-la provehis_fw-la &_o levibus_fw-la sublime_n curribus_fw-la aptans_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la terramque_fw-la seris_fw-la where_o his_o light_a chariot_n which_o all_o life_n or_o soul_n at_o their_o very_a first_o creation_n by_o god_n be_v place_v in_o and_o in_o which_o be_v waste_v they_o be_v both_o together_o as_o as_o it_o be_v sow_v into_o the_o gross_a terrestrial_a matter_n be_v thin_a aereal_a and_o ethereal_a body_n but_o this_o be_v plain_o declare_v by_o proclus_n upon_o the_o timaeus_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o soul_n of_o demon_n and_o man_n 290._o in_o this_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o every_o soul_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v before_o these_o mortal_a body_n certain_a eternal_a and_o easy_o movable_a body_n it_o be_v essential_a to_o they_o to_o move_v there_o be_v indeed_o mention_v make_v by_o the_o same_o proclus_n and_o other_o of_o a_o opinion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d irrational_a or_o brutish_a demon_n or_o demoniac_a aereal_a brute_n 283._o of_o which_o he_o sometime_o speak_v doubtful_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o there_o be_v any_o irrational_a demon_n as_o the_o theurgist_n affirm_v but_o the_o dispute_n doubt_v or_o controversy_n here_o only_o be_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o irrational_a demon_n immortal_a or_o no._n for_o thus_o we_o learn_v from_o these_o word_n of_o ammonius_n upon_o the_o porphyrian_a isagoge_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o irrational_a demon_n immortal_a but_o other_o that_o all_o these_o irrational_a or_o brutish_a demon_n be_v mortal_a where_o by_o irrational_a demon_n immortal_a seem_v to_o be_v understand_v such_o as_o never_o descend_v into_o terrestrial_a body_n and_o these_o be_v there_o disclaim_v by_o ammonius_n but_o the_o mortal_a one_o such_o as_o act_v also_o upon_o gross_a terrestrial_a body_n obnoxious_a to_o death_n and_o corruption_n as_o if_o ammonius_n shall_v have_v say_v there_o be_v no_o other_o brutish_a or_o irrational_a demon_n than_o only_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o brute_n animal_n as_o be_v here_o among_o we_o sometime_o act_v only_o aereal_a body_n thus_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a pythagorick_a hypothesis_n there_o be_v neither_o any_o new_a substantial_a thing_n now_o make_v which_o be_v not_o before_o nor_o yet_o any_o real_a entity_n destroy_v into_o nothing_o not_o only_o no_o matter_n but_o also_o no_o soul_n nor_o life_n god_n after_o the_o first_o creation_n neither_o make_v any_o new_a substance_n nor_o yet_o annihilate_v any_o thing_n make_v he_o then_o create_v nothing_o that_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v conserve_v in_o be_v and_o which_o can_v not_o be_v well_o use_v and_o place_v in_o the_o universe_n and_o afterward_o never_o repent_v he_o of_o what_o he_o have_v before_o do_v and_o natural_a generation_n and_o corruption_n be_v nothing_o but_o accidental_a mutation_n concretion_n and_o secretion_n or_o anagrammatical_a transposition_n of_o prae_fw-la and_o post-existing_a thing_n the_o same_o soul_n and_o life_n be_v sometime_o unite_v to_o one_o body_n and_o sometime_o to_o another_o sometime_o in_o thick_a and_o sometime_o in_o thin_a clothing_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o visible_a sometime_o in_o the_o invisible_a they_o have_v aereal_a as_o well_o as_o terrestrial_a vehicles_n and_o never_o any_o soul_n quite_o naked_a of_o all_o body_n and_o thus_o do_v proclus_n complain_v of_o some_o as_o spurious_a platonist_n 330._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o destroy_v the_o thin_a vehicles_n of_o soul_n be_v therefore_o necessitate_v sometime_o to_o leave_v they_o in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o all_o body_n or_o without_o any_o corporeal_a indument_n which_o cabbala_n probable_o derive_v from_o the_o egyptian_n by_o pythagoras_n be_v before_o full_o represent_v by_o we_o out_o of_o ovid_n though_o that_o transmigration_n of_o humane_a soul_n there_o into_o ferine_n body_n have_v not_o be_v by_o all_o acknowledge_v as_o a_o genuine_a part_n thereof_o and_o the_o same_o be_v likewise_o insist_v upon_o by_o virgil._n georg._n l._n 4._o as_o also_o own_v and_o confirm_v by_o macrobius_n for_o a_o great_a truth_n 12._o constat_fw-la secundum_fw-la verae_fw-la rationis_fw-la assertionem_fw-la quam_fw-la nec_fw-la cicero_n nescit_fw-la nec_fw-la virgilius_n ignorat_fw-la dicendo_fw-la nec_fw-la morti_n esse_fw-la locum_fw-la constat_fw-la inquam_fw-la nihil_fw-la intra_fw-la vivum_fw-la mundum_fw-la perire_fw-la sed_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la interire_fw-la videntur_fw-la solam_fw-la mutari_fw-la speciem_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a according_a to_o reason_n and_o true_a philosophy_n which_o neither_o cicero_n nor_o virgil_n be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n at_o all_o leave_v for_o death_n i_o say_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o to_o we_o seem_v to_o die_v do_v absolute_o perish_v within_o the_o live_a world_n but_o only_o their_o form_n change_v now_o how_o extravagant_a soever_o this_o hypothesis_n seem_v to_o be_v yet_o be_v there_o no_o question_n but_o that_o a_o pythagorean_n will_v endeavour_v to_o find_v some_o countenance_n and_o shelter_n for_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n especial_o that_o place_n which_o have_v so_o puzzle_v and_o non-plus_a interpreter_n rom._n 8.19_o for_o the_o earnest_a expectation_n of_o the_o creature_n wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o creature_n be_v make_v subject_a unto_o vanity_n not_o willing_o but_o by_o reason_n of_o he_o who_o have_v subject_v the_o same_o in_o hope_n because_o the_o creature_n itself_o also_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o whole_a creation_n groan_v and_o travel_v in_o pain_n together_o until_o now_o and_o not_o only_o they_o but_o ourselves_o also_o which_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n groan_v within_o ourselves_o wait_v for_o the_o adoption_n even_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n where_o it_o be_v first_o of_o all_o evident_a 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d creature_n or_o creation_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o the_o very_a same_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o child_n or_o son_n of_o god_n but_o something_o distinct_a from_o they_o wherefore_o in_o the_o next_o place_n the_o pythagorean_n will_v add_v that_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v understand_v either_o of_o the_o inanimate_a creature_n only_o or_o of_o the_o low_a animal_n creation_n or_o else_o of_o both_o these_o together_o now_o though_o it_o be_v ready_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o prosopopoeia_fw-la here_o yet_o can_v all_o those_o expression_n for_o all_o that_o without_o difficulty_n and_o violence_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o inanimate_a creation_n only_o or_o senseless_a matter_n viz._n that_o this_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o earnest_a expectation_n of_o some_o future_a good_a to_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v now_o make_v subject_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o vanity_n frustration_n and_o disappointment_n of_o desire_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o corruption_n and_o death_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o willing_o but_o reluctant_o and_o yet_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d too_o in_o hope_n notwithstanding_o of_o some_o further_a good_a to_o follow_v afterward_o and_o that_o it_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d groan_n and_o travel_v in_o pain_n together_o till_o it_o be_v at_o length_n deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n moreover_o in_o the_o generation_n and_o corruption_n of_o senseless_a body_n as_o of_o mineral_n and_o vegetable_n or_o when_o for_o example_n oil_n be_v turn_v into_o flame_n flame_n into_o smoke_n water_n into_o vapour_n vapour_n into_o snow_n or_o hail_n grass_n into_o milk_n milk_n into_o blood_n and_o bones_o and_o the_o like_a there_o be_v i_o say_v in_o all_o this_o no_o hurt_v do_v to_o
co-extended_n with_o its_o ray_n and_o light_n it_o will_v see_v and_o perceive_v every_o atom_n of_o matter_n that_o it_o be_v out_o stretch_a beam_n reach_v to_o and_o touch_v now_o all_o create_a being_n be_v themselves_o in_o some_o sense_n but_o the_o ray_n of_o the_o deity_n which_o therefore_o can_v but_o feel_v and_o sensible_o perceive_v all_o these_o its_o own_o efflux_n and_o emanation_n man_n themselves_o can_v order_v and_o manage_v affair_n in_o several_a distant_a place_n at_o once_o without_o any_o disturbance_n and_o we_o have_v innumerable_a notion_n of_o thing_n in_o our_o mind_n that_o lie_v there_o easy_o together_o without_o crowd_v one_o another_o or_o cause_v any_o distraction_n to_o we_o nevertheless_o the_o mind_n of_o weak_a mortal_n may_v here_o be_v somewhat_o ease_v and_o help_v by_o consider_v what_o have_v be_v before_o suggest_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n god_n almighty_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v all_o thing_n himself_o immediate_o and_o drudge_o but_o he_o may_v have_v his_o inferior_a minister_n and_o executioner_n under_o he_o to_o discharge_v he_o of_o that_o suppose_a encumberment_n as_o first_o of_o all_o a_o artificial_a plastic_a nature_n which_o without_o knowledge_n and_o animal_n consciousness_n dispose_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o universe_n according_a to_o the_o platform_n or_o idea_n of_o a_o perfect_a mind_n and_o form_n the_o body_n of_o all_o animal_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o do_v before_o insist_v so_o much_o upon_o this_o artificial_a regular_n and_o methodical_a nature_n namely_o that_o divine_a providence_n may_v neither_o be_v exclude_v from_o have_v a_o influence_n upon_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o low_a world_n as_o result_v only_o from_o the_o fortuitous_a motion_n of_o senseless_a matter_n unguided_a by_o any_o mind_n nor_o yet_o the_o deity_n be_v suppose_v to_o do_v every_o thing_n itself_o immediate_o and_o miraculous_o without_o the_o subservient_fw-fr ministry_n of_o any_o natural_a cause_n which_o will_v seem_v to_o we_o mortal_n to_o be_v not_o only_o a_o violent_a but_o also_o a_o operose_fw-la cumbersome_a and_o moliminous_a business_n and_o thus_o do_v plato_n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d certain_a cause_n of_o a_o prudent_a that_o be_v artificial_a and_o orderly_a nature_n which_o god_n make_v use_v of_o as_o subservient_fw-fr to_o himself_o in_o the_o mundane_a oeconomy_n beside_o which_o those_o instinct_n also_o impress_v upon_o animal_n and_o which_o they_o be_v passive_a to_o direct_v they_o to_o act_n for_o end_n either_o not_o understand_v or_o not_o attend_v to_o by_o they_o in_o order_n to_o their_o own_o good_a and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o universe_n be_v another_o part_n of_o that_o divine_a fate_n which_o insert_v into_o thing_n themselves_o be_v the_o servant_n and_o executioner_n of_o providence_n above_o all_o which_o there_o be_v yet_o other_o know_v and_o understanding_n minister_n of_o the_o deity_n as_o its_o eye_n and_o hand_n demoniac_a or_o angelic_a being_n appoint_v to_o preside_v over_o mankind_n all_o mundane_a affair_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n they_o have_v their_o several_a distinct_a office_n and_o province_n assign_v they_o of_o which_o also_o plato_n thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 903_o there_o be_v certain_a ruler_n or_o precedent_n appoint_v by_o that_o supreme_a god_n who_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o all_o the_o several_a thing_n and_o part_n therein_o even_o to_o the_o small_a distribution_n of_o they_o all_o which_o inferior_a cause_n be_v constant_o over_o look_v and_o supervise_v by_o the_o watchful_a eye_n of_o god_n almighty_n himself_o who_o may_v also_o sometime_o extraordinary_o interpose_v we_o need_v not_o therefore_o restrain_v and_o confine_v divine_a providence_n to_o a_o few_o great_a thing_n only_o as_o some_o do_v that_o we_o may_v thereby_o consult_v the_o ease_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o its_o freedom_n from_o distraction_n but_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o extend_v it_o to_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o small_a as_o well_o as_o great_a and_o indeed_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n can_v well_o be_v order_v neither_o without_o some_o regard_n to_o the_o small_a and_o little_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o architect_n affirm_v that_o great_a stone_n can_v be_v well_o place_v together_o in_o a_o building_n without_o little_a neither_o can_v general_n of_o army_n nor_o governor_n of_o family_n nor_o master_n of_o ship_n nor_o mechanic_n artificer_n discharge_v their_o several_a function_n and_o do_v their_o work_n respective_o as_o they_o ought_v do_v they_o not_o mind_v the_o small_a thing_n also_o as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o forementioned_a philosopher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o not_o therefore_o make_v god_n almighty_a inferior_a to_o mortal_a opificer_n who_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o art_n can_v order_v small_a thing_n as_o well_o as_o great_a and_o so_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v supine_n and_o negligent_a nevertheless_o the_o chief_a concernment_n and_o employment_n of_o divine_a providence_n in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o oeconomy_n of_o soul_n or_o government_n of_o rational_a being_n which_o be_v by_o plato_n contract_v into_o this_o compendium_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 903._o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v no_o other_o work_n leave_v for_o the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o then_o only_o to_o translate_v better_a soul_n into_o better_a place_n and_o condition_n and_o worse_o into_o worse_o or_o as_o he_o after_o add_v to_o dispose_v of_o every_o one_o in_o the_o world_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o might_n best_o render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d virtue_n victorious_a and_o triumphant_a over_o vice_n and_o thus_o may_v the_o slow_a and_o imperfect_a wit_n of_o mortal_n be_v satisfy_v that_o providence_n to_o the_o deity_n be_v no_o moliminous_a laborious_a and_o distractious_a thing_n but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o high_a spring_n of_o life_n in_o rational_a animal_n than_o contract_a self_n love_n and_o that_o all_o good_a will_n and_o benevolence_n arise_v only_o from_o indigency_n and_o imbecility_n and_o that_o no_o be_v whatsoever_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o welfare_n of_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o only_o what_o itself_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o and_o last_o therefore_o that_o what_o be_v irresistible_o powerful_a and_o needs_o nothing_o will_v have_v no_o manner_n of_o benevolence_n nor_o concern_v itself_o in_o the_o good_a and_o welfare_n of_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o this_o be_v but_o another_o idol_n of_o the_o atheist_n den_n and_o only_o argue_v their_o bad_a nature_n low-sunck_a mind_n and_o gross_a immorality_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v also_o of_o that_o other_o maxim_n of_o they_o that_o what_o be_v perfect_o happy_a will_v have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v but_o only_o enjoy_v its_o own_o ease_n and_o quiet_n whereas_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o troublesome_a to_o ourselves_o than_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v and_o the_o activity_n of_o the_o deity_n or_o a_o perfect_a be_v be_v altogether_o as_o easy_a to_o it_o as_o its_o essence_n the_o atheistick_a query_n come_v next_o to_o be_v answer_v which_o be_v but_o three_o be_v natural_o to_o be_v dispose_v in_o this_o order_n first_o if_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o perfect_a be_v who_o therefore_o be_v sufficient_o happy_a in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o himself_o why_o will_v he_o go_v about_o to_o make_v a_o world_n second_o if_o he_o must_v needs_o make_v a_o world_n why_o do_v he_o not_o make_v it_o soon_o this_o late_o production_n thereof_o look_v as_o if_o he_o have_v but_o new_o awake_v out_o out_o of_o a_o long_a sleep_n throughout_o infinite_a past_o age_n or_o else_o have_v in_o length_n of_o time_n contract_v a_o satiety_n of_o his_o solitude_n three_o and_o last_o what_o tool_n or_o instrument_n what_o machine_n or_o engine_n have_v be_v or_o how_o can_v he_o move_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n especial_o if_o incorporeal_a because_o than_o he_o will_v run_v through_o all_o thing_n and_o can_v not_o lay_v hold_n nor_o fasten_v upon_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o first_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n make_v the_o world_n be_v from_o his_o own_o overflow_n and_o communicative_a goodness_n that_o there_o may_v be_v other_o being_n also_o happy_a beside_o he_o and_o enjoy_v themselves_o nor_o do_v this_o at_o all_o clash_n with_o god_n make_v of_o the_o world_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o honour_n though_o plotinus_n be_v so_o shy_a of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v that_o god_n make_v the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v this_o be_v to_o transfer_v the_o affection_n of_o humane_a artificer_n and_o statuary_n upon_o he_o
c.d.l._n 100l_n 29._o p._n ●●_o storm_n l._n 5._o p._n 598._o l._n 6._o c._n cels._n cont._n cels._n l._n 6._o p._n 308._o p●_n eu._n l._n ●1_n c._n 20._o p._n 278_o de_fw-fr c._n d._n p._n 277._o in_o timae_n l●b_n 2._o p._n 93._o c_o jul._n l._n 8._o p._n ●71_n euseb._n p.e.l._n 14._o c._n 5._o p._n 468_o 469._o l._n 2._o c._n 9_o ad_fw-la adelph_n p._n 157._o p._n 160._o thaect_n p._n 155_o steph._n plato_n theaet_fw-la tract_n theol._n pelit_fw-la lamb._n 528._o lib._n 5._o lamb._n p._n 500_o de_fw-fr leg._n l._n 10._o de_fw-fr regno_fw-la p●_n ●_z metaph._n l._n ●_o c._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d c._n de_fw-fr herod_n malign_v lamb._n 503._o p._n 503._o ●p_n ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d p._n ●●_o cass._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cap._n 25.12_o hebr._n c._n 11_o 1_o cic._n de_fw-fr n.d.l._n 1.213_o lamb._n cic._n ibid._n cic._n ibid._n de_fw-fr supersi_fw-la epist._n ad_fw-la men._n p._n 49._o gass._n de_n super_v lucret._n p._n 500_o l._n steph._n p●c_n ph●l_n 158._o ex_fw-la sextu_fw-la alex._n aph._n lib._n de_fw-fr fato_fw-la p._n act._n 17.28_o lucret._n l._n 4._o p._n 367._o lamb._n phys._n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o p._n 367._o lamb._n lucret._n l._n 5._o p_o 476._o lamb._n luc._n l._n 5._o p._n 479._o p._n 480._o lamb._n p._n 476._o nat._n ausc._n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o p._n 28._o gass._n nat._n ausc._n l._n 2._o c._n 9_o n●t_fw-la ausc._n l._n 2._o ●_o 9_o steph._n poet._n philos._n lib._n 3._o c._n ult_n lib._n 1._o c._n 9_o in_o philo._n quòd_fw-la mund._o incur_v adu._n math._n 314._o adu._n mat●_n 314._o adu._n math._n 3●3_n 314._o adu._n math._n p._n 317._o p._n 167._o serr_n imper._n c._n 14._o sect._n 21._o leu._n p._n 168._o de_fw-fr cive_z c._n 12._o sect._n 2._o leu._n c_o 38._o p._n 238._o leu._n p._n 8._o pag._n 373._o adu._n ma●●_n p._n 311._o page_n 29._o ant._n j●d_n lib._n 8._o c._n 2._o pag._n 69._o pag._n 6●_n deut._n 18_o de_fw-fr diu._n l._n 1._o diog._n lacr●_n 〈◊〉_d v._o epic._n de_fw-fr diu._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr n.d.l._n 2._o p._n 239._o lamb._n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o strom._n l._n 5._o p._n 388._o theat_v p._n 154._o met._n l._n 12._o c._n 5._o met._n l._n 12._o c._n 4._o met._n l._n 12._o c_o 5._o du_fw-mi vall._n de_fw-fr cive_z rel._n c._n 15._o sect._n 14·_n leu._n cap._n 31._o wisd._n c._n 7._o met._n l._n 4._o c._n met._n l._n 12._o c._n 5._o l._n 2._o p._n 191_o lamb._n l._n 2._o p._n 134._o lamb._n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o thus_o porphyr_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n materiae_fw-la proprietates_fw-la secundum_fw-la veteres_n hae_fw-la sunt_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la incorporea_fw-la etc._n etc._n soph._n p._n 172._o fie_o met._n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o p._n 14._o c._n 7._o de_fw-fr an._n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o fol._n 6._o de_fw-fr confus_n ling._n p._n 339._o p._n 667._o p._n 644._o p._n 649._o p._n 229_o 230._o p._n 231._o p._n 656._o p._n 764._o p._n 645._o sent._n p._n 243._o p._n 656._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 2●2_n p._n 224._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o ar._n phys._n p._n 3._o p._n 669._o en._n 4._o l._n 7._o p._n 460._o p._n 662._o p._n 662._o en._n 6._o l._n 4._o c._n en._n 4._o l._n 3._o c._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 232._o p●eoem_n in_o aristot_n d●_n an._n ibid._n p._n 290._o p._n 164._o p._n 293._o dug_n hip._n &_o plat._n l._n 7._o p._n 294._o p._n 289._o p._n 290._o p._n 297._o thus_o s._n austin_n corpora_fw-la angelica_n and_o qualia_n sunt_fw-la angelorum_fw-la death_n call_v sleep_n in_o scripture_n only_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d peri_n arch._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr an._n p._n ●09_n rigal_n l._n 2._o c._n 62._o c._n 63._o 1_o pet._n 3.18_o 19_o of_o this_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o 12._o book_n de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit._n c._n 33._o et_fw-la christi_fw-la quidem_fw-la animam_fw-la venisse_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la ea_fw-la loca_fw-la in_o quibus_fw-la peccatores_fw-la cruciantur_fw-la ut_fw-la choose_fw-la solvent_a quos_fw-la esse_fw-la solvendos_fw-la occulto●_n nobis_fw-la sva_fw-la justitia_fw-la judicabat_fw-la non_fw-la immeritò_fw-la creditur_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 8._o p._n 17._o orig._n l._n 8._o clnt._n cels._n l._n 7._o p._n 334._o c._n 1._o in_o psal._n 85._o in_o psal._n 145·_n de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit._n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o l._n 2._o c._n 11._o l._n 3._o l._n 3._o de_fw-fr trin._n p._n 33._o p._n 94._o p._n 30.33_o de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit._n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit._n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o p._n 37._o cont._n cels._n l._n 7._o p_o 353._o thus_o origen_n plain_o in_o his_o five_o book_n p._n 244._o that_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o earthly_a house_n in_o which_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v that_o will_v be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d itself_o wherein_o good_a man_n groan_v be_v burden_v not_o that_o they_o will_v put_v it_o off_o but_o put_v on_o immortality_n upon_o it_o p._n 94._o de_fw-fr genesi_fw-la ad_fw-la literam_fw-la c_o 32._o de_fw-fr civ_o d._n lib._n 21._o c._n 26_o c._n cels._n l._n ●_o 240_o c._n cels._n l._n 5.244_o p._n 460._o en._n 4._o l._n 7._o c._n 2._o p._n 461._o p._n 462._o plot._n p._n 463._o from_o p._n 654._o to_o 663._o l._n 1._o c._n c●ls_n p._n 17._o p._n 169._o lucret._n l._n 4._o p._n 358_o 360._o de_fw-fr leg_n l._n 10._o p._n 889._o cons_n l._n 5._o pro._n 4._o boët_n cons._n l._n 5._o m._n 4._o pl._n l._n 10._o de_fw-fr leg._n l._n 5_o p._n 290._o l._n 4._o p._n 283._o in_o tim._n p._n 330._o somn._fw-la scip._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o p._n 240._o so_o likewise_o p._n 247._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o we_o also_o god_n can_v do_v nothing_o that_o be_v absurd_a or_o beside_o reason_n reason_n p._n 265._o p_o 743._o thus_o plato_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr leg._n p._n 903._o de_fw-fr leg._n 10._o p._n 903._o thus_o do_v some_o in_o plato_n from_o hence_o conclude_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de._n leg._n 10._o p._n 256._o p._n 264._o thus_o hierocles_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 157._o 157._o p._n 134._o p._n 903_o p._n 903._o p._n 4._o de_fw-fr rep._n l._n 2._o p._n 358_o 359._o the_o content_n chap._n i._o contain_v a_o account_n of_o the_o atomick_a physiology_n as_o make_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o atheistick_a fate_n or_o the_o material_a necessity_n of_o all_o thing_n i._o three_o fatalism_n or_o the_o necessity_n of_o all_o human_a action_n and_o event_n maintain_v upon_o three_o several_a ground_n which_o be_v so_o many_o false_a hypothesis_n of_o the_o intellectual_a system_n of_o the_o universe_n page_n 3_o ii_o concern_v the_o mathematical_a or_o astrological_a fate_n page_n 4_o iii_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o suppose_v a_o fate_n superior_a to_o the_o high_a deity_n page_z 5_o iu._n the_o moderation_n of_o the_o intend_a discourse_n concern_v liberty_n and_o necessity_n page_n 6_o v._o the_o atheistical_a hypothesis_n or_o democritick_n fate_n as_o found_v upon_o the_o atomick_a physiology_n which_o therefore_o brief_o describe_v page_n 7_o vi_o the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o atomick_a physiology_n with_o the_o account_n give_v thereof_o by_o aristotle_n page_n 8_o vii_o a_o clear_a and_o full_a record_n of_o the_o same_o physiology_n in_o plato_n not_o common_o take_v notice_n of_o page_n 10_o viii_o that_o neither_o protagoras_n nor_o democritus_n nor_o leucippus_n nor_o any_o atheist_n be_v the_o first_o inventour_n or_o founder_n of_o this_o atomick_a physiology_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o be_v thorough_o acquaint_v therewith_o in_o order_n to_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o modern_a atheism_n page_n 11_o ix_o the_o tradition_n of_o posidonius_n the_o stoic_a that_o moschus_n a_o ancient_a phoenician_n before_o the_o trojan_a war_n be_v the_o first_o inventour_n of_o this_o atomical_a physiology_n brief_o suggest_v page_n 12_o x._o that_o this_o moschus_n the_o inventour_n of_o the_o atomical_a physiology_n be_v probably_n the_o same_o with_o mochus_n the_o physiologer_n in_o jamblichus_n with_o who_o successor_n priest_n and_o prophet_n pythagoras_n converse_v at_o sidon_n ibid._n xi_o other_o probability_n for_o this_o that_o pythagoras_n be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o atomick_a physiology_n page_n 13_o xii_o that_o pythagoras_n his_o monad_n be_v sometime_o take_v for_o corporeal_a atom_n from_o ecphantus_n in_o stobaeus_n and_o aristotle_n ibid._n xiii_o prove_v clear_o that_o empedocles_n who_o be_v a_o pythagorean_n physiologize_v atomical_o page_n 14_o fourteen_o the_o same_o further_o evince_v from_o plato_n aristotle_n and_o plutarch_n page_n 15_o xv._o that_o anaxagoras_n senior_n to_o democritus_n be_v a_o spurious_a or_o bungle_a atomist_n and_o a_o unskilful_a imitator_n of_o that_o physiology_n before_o in_o use_n page_n 16_o xvi_o that_o
the_o divine_a art_n or_o wisdom_n as_o the_o manuary_a opificer_n from_o the_o architect_n page_n 155_o 12._o two_o imperfection_n of_o nature_n in_o respect_n whereof_o it_o fall_v short_a of_o humane_a art_n first_o that_o though_o it_o act_v for_o end_n artificial_o yet_o itself_o neither_o intend_v those_o end_n nor_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o it_o do_v for_o which_o cause_n it_o can_v act_v elective_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o spermatick_a reason_n and_o knowledge_n that_o nature_n do_v but_o ape_n or_o mimic_n the_o divine_a art_n or_o wisdom_n be_v itself_o not_o master_n of_o that_o reason_n according_a to_o which_o it_o act_n but_o only_o a_o servant_n to_o it_o and_o drudge_a executioner_n thereof_o page_n 156_o 13._o prove_v that_o there_o may_v be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o act_v artificial_o though_o itself_o do_v not_o comprehend_v that_o art_n and_o reason_n by_o which_o its_o motion_n be_v govern_v first_o from_o musical_a habit_n the_o dancer_n resemble_v the_o artificial_a life_n of_o nature_n page_n 157_o 14._o the_o same_o further_o evince_v from_o the_o instinct_n of_o brute_n animal_n direct_v they_o to_o act_v rational_o and_o artificial_o in_o order_n to_o their_o own_o good_a and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o universe_n without_o any_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o these_o instinct_n in_o brute_n but_o passive_a impress_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o a_o kind_n of_o fate_n upon_o they_o page_n 158_o 15._o the_o second_o imperfection_n of_o nature_n that_o it_o act_v without_o animal_n fancy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d con-sense_n or_o consciousness_n and_o have_v no_o express_a self-perception_a and_o self-enjoyment_n ibid._n 16._o whether_o this_o energy_n of_o the_o plastic_a nature_n be_v to_o be_v call_v cogitation_n or_o no_o nothing_o but_o a_o logomachy_n or_o contention_n about_o word_n grant_v that_o what_o move_v matter_n vital_o must_v needs_o do_v it_o by_o some_o energy_n of_o its_o own_o distinct_a from_o local_a motion_n but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o simple_a vital_a energy_n without_o that_o duplicity_n which_o be_v in_o synaesthesis_n or_o clear_a and_o express_a consciousness_n nevertheless_o that_o the_o energy_n of_o nature_n may_v be_v call_v a_o certain_a drowsy_a unawaken_v or_o astonish_v cogitation_n page_n 159_o 17._o several_a instance_n which_o render_v it_o probable_a that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o vital_a energy_n without_o synaesthesis_n clear_a and_o express_a con-sense_n or_o consciousness_n page_n 160_o 18._o wherefore_o the_o plastic_a nature_n act_v neither_o know_o nor_o fantastical_o must_v needs_o act_v fatal_o magical_o and_o sympathetical_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o fate_n as_o to_o matter_n not_o mere_a cogitation_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n but_o a_o energetic_n and_o effectual_a principle_n in_o it_o and_o this_o plastic_a nature_n the_o true_a and_o proper_a fate_n of_o matter_n or_o of_o the_o corporeal_a world_n what_o magic_a be_v and_o that_o nature_n which_o act_v fatal_o act_v also_o magical_o and_o sympathetical_o p._n 161_o 19_o that_o nature_n though_o it_o be_v the_o divine_a art_n or_o fate_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o be_v neither_o a_o god_n nor_o goddess_n but_o a_o low_a and_o imperfect_a creature_n it_o act_v artificial_o and_o rational_o no_o otherwise_o than_o compound_v form_n of_o letter_n when_o print_v coherent_a philosophic_a sense_n nor_o for_o end_n than_o a_o saw_n or_o hatchet_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o skilful_a mechanic_n the_o plastic_a and_o vegetative_a life_n of_o nature_n the_o low_a of_o all_o life_n and_o inferior_a to_o the_o sensitive_a a_o high_a providence_n than_o that_o of_o the_o plastic_a nature_n govern_v the_o corporeal_a world_n itself_o ibid._n 20._o notwithstanding_o which_v forasmuch_o as_o the_o plastic_a nature_n be_v a_o life_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v incorporeal_a one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n have_v in_o it_o a_o entire_a model_n and_o platform_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o act_v upon_o several_a distant_a part_n of_o matter_n can_v be_v a_o body_n and_o though_o aristotle_n himself_o do_v no_o where_n declare_v this_o nature_n to_o be_v either_o corporeal_a or_o incorporeal_a which_o he_o neither_o clear_o do_v concern_v the_o rational_a soul_n and_o his_o follower_n common_o take_v it_o to_o be_v corporeal_a yet_o according_a to_o the_o genuine_a principle_n of_o that_o philosophy_n must_v it_o needs_o be_v otherwise_o page_n 165_o 21._o the_o plastic_a nature_n be_v incorporeal_a must_v either_o be_v a_o low_a power_n lodge_v in_o soul_n which_o be_v also_o conscious_a sensitive_a or_o rational_a or_o else_o a_o distinct_a substantial_a life_n by_o itself_o and_o inferior_a soul_n that_o the_o platonist_n affirm_v both_o with_o aristotle_n agreeable_a determination_n that_o nature_n be_v either_o part_n of_o a_o soul_n or_o not_o without_o soul_n ibid._n 22._o the_o plastic_a nature_n as_o to_o the_o body_n of_o animal_n a_o part_n or_o low_a power_n of_o their_o respective_a soul_n that_o the_o phaenomena_n prove_v a_o plastic_a nature_n or_o archaeus_n in_o animal_n to_o make_v which_o a_o distinct_a thing_n from_o the_o soul_n will_v be_v to_o multiply_v entity_n without_o necessity_n the_o soul_n endue_v with_o a_o plastic_a nature_n the_o chief_a formatrix_fw-la of_o its_o own_o body_n the_o contribution_n of_o other_o cause_n not_o exclude_v page_n 166_o 23._o that_o beside_o the_o plastic_a in_o particular_a animal_n form_v they_o as_o so_o many_o little_a world_n there_o be_v a_o general_n plastic_a or_o artificial_a nature_n in_o the_o whole_a corporeal_a universe_n which_o likewise_o according_a to_o aristotle_n be_v either_o a_o part_n and_o low_a power_n of_o a_o conscious_a mundane_a soul_n or_o else_o something_o depend_v thereon_o page_n 167_o 24._o that_o no_o less_o according_a to_o aristotle_n than_o plato_n and_o socrates_n ourselves_o partake_v of_o life_n from_o the_o life_n of_o the_o universe_n as_o well_o as_o we_o do_v of_o heat_n and_o cold_a from_o the_o heat_n and_o cold_a of_o the_o universe_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o aristotle_n also_o hold_v the_o world_n animation_n which_o be_v further_a vndeniable_o prove_v a_o answer_n to_o two_o the_o most_o considerable_a place_n in_o that_o philosopher_n object_v to_o the_o contrary_n that_o aristotle_n first_n immovable_a mover_n be_v no_o soul_n but_o a_o perfect_a intellect_n abstract_n from_o matter_n which_o he_o suppose_v to_o move_v only_o as_o a_o final_a cause_n or_o as_o be_v love_v and_o beside_o this_o a_o mundane_a soul_n and_o plastic_a nature_n to_o move_v the_o heaven_n efficient_o neither_o aristotle_n nature_n nor_o mundane_a soul_n the_o supreme_a deity_n however_o though_o there_o be_v no_o such_o mundane_a soul_n as_o both_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n conceive_v yet_o may_v there_o be_v notwithstanding_o a_o plastic_a or_o artificial_a nature_n depend_v upon_o a_o high_a intellectual_a principle_n page_n 168_o 25._o no_o impossibility_n of_o other_o particular_a plastic_o and_o though_o it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a to_o think_v every_o plant_n herb_n and_o pile_n of_o grass_n to_o have_v a_o plastic_a or_o vegetative_a soul_n of_o its_o own_o nor_o the_o earth_n to_o be_v a_o animal_n yet_o may_v there_o possible_o be_v one_o plastic_a artificial_a nature_n preside_v over_o the_o whole_a terraqueous_a globe_n by_o which_o vegetable_n may_v be_v several_o organise_v and_o frame_v and_o all_o thing_n perform_v which_o transcend_v the_o power_n of_o fortuitous_a mechanism_n page_n 171_o 26._o our_o second_o undertake_n which_o be_v to_o show_v how_o gross_o those_o atheist_n who_o acknowledge_v this_o artificial_a plastic_a nature_n without_o animality_n misunderstand_v it_o and_o abuse_v the_o notion_n to_o make_v a_o counterfeit_n god_n almighty_a or_o numen_fw-la of_o it_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o true_a deity_n first_o in_o their_o suppose_v that_o to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o high_a principle_n of_o the_o universe_n which_o be_v the_o last_o and_o low_a of_o all_o life_n a_o thing_n as_o essential_o derivative_a from_o and_o dependent_a upon_o a_o high_a intellectual_a principle_n as_o the_o echo_n on_o the_o original_a voice_n second_o in_o their_o make_a sense_n and_o reason_n in_o animal_n to_o emerge_n out_o of_o a_o senseless_a life_n of_o nature_n by_o the_o mere_a modification_n and_o organization_n of_o matter_n that_o no_o duplication_n of_o corporeal_a organ_n can_v ever_o make_v one_o single_a inconscious_a life_n to_o advance_v into_o redouble_v consciousness_n and_o self-enjoyment_n three_o in_o attribute_v some_o of_o they_o perfect_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n to_o this_o life_n of_o nature_n which_o yet_o themselves_o suppose_v to_o be_v devoid_a of_o all_o animal_n sense_n and_o consciousness_n last_o in_o make_v this_o plastic_a life_n of_o nature_n to_o be_v mere_o corporeal_a the_o hylozoïst_n contend_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o inadequate_a conception_n of_o body_n as_o the_o only_a
substance_n and_o fond_o dream_v that_o the_o vulgar_a notion_n of_o a_o god_n be_v nothing_o but_o such_o a_o inadequate_a conception_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o whole_a universe_n mistake_v for_o a_o entire_a substance_n by_o itself_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o thus_o far_o the_o digression_n page_n 172_o xxxviii_o that_o though_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o atheistick_a ground_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o method_n aught_o to_o have_v be_v reserve_v for_o the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n yet_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o violate_v those_o law_n crave_v the_o reader_n be_v pardon_v for_o this_o preposterousness_n a_o considerable_a observation_n of_o plato_n that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o gross_a sensuality_n which_o incline_v man_n to_o atheize_v but_o also_o a_o affectation_n of_o seem_v wise_a than_o the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n as_o likewise_o that_o the_o atheist_n make_v such_o pretence_n to_o wit_n it_o be_v a_o seasonable_a and_o proper_a undertake_n to_o evince_v that_o they_o fumble_v in_o all_o their_o ratiocination_n and_o we_o hope_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o atheist_n be_v no_o conjurer_n and_o that_o all_o form_n of_o atheism_n be_v nonsense_n and_o impossibility_n page_n 174_o chap._n iu_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n declare_v in_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o atheistick_a argument_n and_o the_o grand_a objection_n against_o the_o naturality_n of_o this_o idea_n as_o essential_o include_v unity_n or_o oneliness_n in_o it_o from_o the_o pagan_a polytheism_n remove_v prove_v that_o the_o intelligent_a pagan_n general_o acknowledge_v one_o supreme_a deity_n a_o full_a explication_n of_o who_o polytheism_n and_o idolatry_n intend_v in_o order_n to_o the_o better_a give_v a_o account_n of_o christianity_n i._o the_o either_o stupid_a insensibility_n or_o gross_a impudence_n of_o atheist_n in_o deny_v the_o word_n god_n to_o have_v any_o signification_n or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o idea_n answer_v to_o it_o beside_o the_o mere_a phantasm_n of_o the_o sound_n the_o disease_n call_v by_o the_o philosopher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o petrification_n or_o dead_a insensibility_n of_o the_o mind_n page_n 192_o ii_o that_o the_o atheist_n themselves_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o idea_n of_o god_n in_o their_o mind_n or_o otherwise_o when_o they_o deny_v his_o existence_n they_o shall_v deny_v the_o existence_n of_o nothing_o that_o they_o have_v also_o the_o same_o idea_n of_o he_o in_o general_n with_o the_o theist_n the_o one_o deny_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o the_o other_o affirm_v page_n 194_o iii_o a_o lemma_n or_o preparatory_a proposition_n to_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n that_o though_o some_o thing_n be_v make_v or_o generate_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v make_v but_o something_o must_v of_o necessity_n exist_v of_o itself_o from_o eternity_n unmake_v and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v ibid._n iv_o the_o two_o most_o opposite_a opinion_n concern_v what_o be_v selfexistent_a from_o eternity_n or_o unmake_v and_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n make_v one_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o senseless_a matter_n the_o most_o imperfect_a of_o all_o thing_n the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v something_o most_o perfect_a and_o therefore_o conscious_o intellectual_a the_o asserter_n of_o this_o latter_a opinion_n theist_n in_o a_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o former_a atheist_n so_o that_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n in_o general_n be_v a_o perfect_a conscious_o understanding_n be_v or_o mind_n selfexistent_a from_o eternity_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n page_n 194_o 195._o v._o observable_a that_o the_o atheist_n who_o deny_v a_o god_n according_a to_o the_o true_a idea_n of_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o often_o abuse_v the_o word_n call_v senseless_a matter_n by_o that_o name_n they_o mean_v nothing_o else_o thereby_o but_o only_o a_o first_o principle_n or_o selfexistent_a unmake_v thing_n according_a to_o which_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n god_n there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n at_o all_o as_o a_o atheist_n no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o persuade_v himself_o that_o all_o thing_n spring_v from_o nothing_o page_n 195_o vi_o in_o order_n to_o a_o more_o punctual_a declaration_n of_o this_o divine_a idea_n the_o opinion_n of_o those_o take_a notice_n of_o who_o suppose_v two_o selfexistent_a unmake_v principle_n god_n and_o matter_n according_a to_o which_o god_n not_o the_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n nor_o the_o sole_a principle_n but_o only_o the_o chief_a page_n 196_o 197._o vii_o these_o materiarians_n imperfect_a and_o mistake_v theist_n not_o atheist_n because_o they_o suppose_v the_o world_n make_v and_o govern_v by_o a_o animalish_n sentient_a and_o understanding_n nature_n whereas_o no_o atheist_n acknowledge_v conscious_a animality_n to_o be_v a_o first_o principle_n but_o conclude_v it_o to_o be_v all_o generable_a and_o corruptible_a nor_o yet_o genuine_a theist_n because_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o omnipotence_n in_o the_o full_a extent_n thereof_o a_o latitude_n therefore_o in_o theism_n and_o none_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o absolute_a atheist_n but_o such_o as_o deny_v a_o eternal_a unmake_v mind_n the_o framer_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n page_n 198_o 199._o viii_o an_o absolute_o perfect_a be_v the_o most_o compendious_a idea_n of_o god_n which_o include_v in_o it_o not_o only_o necessary_a existence_n and_o conscious_a intellectuality_n but_o also_o omni-causality_a omnipotence_n or_o infinite_a power_n wherefore_o god_n the_o sole_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o cause_n of_o matter_n the_o true_a notion_n of_o infinite_a power_n and_o that_o pagan_n common_o acknowledge_v omnipotence_n or_o infinite_a power_n to_o be_v include_v in_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n page_n 200_o 201._o ix_o that_o absolute_a perfection_n imply_v yet_o something_o more_o than_o knowledge_n and_o power_n a_o vaticination_n in_o man_n mind_n of_o a_o high_a good_a than_o either_o that_o according_a to_o aristotle_n god_n be_v better_a than_o knowledge_n and_o have_v morality_n in_o his_o nature_n wherein_o also_o his_o chief_a happiness_n consist_v this_o borrow_a from_o plato_n to_o who_o the_o high_a perfection_n and_o supreme_a deity_n be_v goodness_n itself_o substantial_a above_o knowledge_n and_o intellect_n agreeable_o with_o which_o the_o scripture_n make_v god_n and_o the_o supreme_a good_a love_n this_o not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o soft_a fond_a and_o partial_a love_n god_n be_v right_o call_v also_o a_o impartial_a law_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o all_o thing_n atheist_n also_o suppose_v goodness_n to_o be_v include_v in_o the_o idea_n of_o that_o god_n who_o existence_n they_o deny_v this_o idea_n here_o more_o large_o declare_v page_n 202_o 203_o etc._n etc._n x._o that_o this_o forementioned_a idea_n of_o god_n essential_o include_v unity_n oneliness_n or_o solitariety_n in_o it_o since_o there_o can_v possible_o be_v more_o than_o one_o absolute_o supreme_a one_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n one_o omnipotent_a and_o one_o infinite_o perfect_a epicurus_n and_o his_o follower_n profess_o deny_v a_o god_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n of_o he_o page_n 207_o xi_o the_o grand_a objection_n against_o the_o idea_n of_o god_n as_o thus_o essential_o including_n oneliness_n and_o singularity_n in_o it_o from_o the_o polytheism_n of_o all_o nation_n former_o the_o jew_n except_v and_o of_o all_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o philosopher_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v infer_v that_o this_o idea_n of_o god_n be_v not_o natural_a but_o artificial_a and_o owe_v its_o original_a to_o law_n and_o arbitrary_a institution_n only_o a_o enquiry_n therefore_o here_o to_o be_v make_v concern_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o pagan_a polytheism_n the_o objector_n secure_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o pagan_a polytheist_n universal_o assert_v many_o unmake_v selfexistent_a intellectual_a being_n and_o independent_a deity_n as_o so_o many_o partial_a cause_n of_o the_o world_n page_n 208_o 209._o xii_o the_o irrationality_n of_o which_o opinion_n and_o its_o manifest_a repugnancy_n to_o the_o phaenomena_n render_v it_o less_o probable_a to_o have_v be_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o pagan_a polytheist_n page_n 210_o xiii_o that_o the_o pagan_a deity_n be_v not_o all_o of_o they_o universal_o look_v upon_o as_o so_o many_o unmake_v selfexistent_a being_n unquestionable_o evident_a from_o hence_o because_o they_o general_o hold_v a_o theogonia_n or_o generation_n of_o go_n this_o point_n of_o the_o pagan_a theology_n insist_v upon_o by_o herodotus_n the_o most_o ancient_a prosaïck_a greek_a writer_n in_o who_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o question_n whether_o the_o god_n be_v generate_v or_o exist_v all_o from_o eternity_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o same_o with_o this_o of_o plato_n whether_o the_o world_n be_v make_v or_o unmake_v page_n 211_o certain_a also_o that_o among_o
by_o methodius_n for_o assert_v soul_n to_o have_v body_n but_o for_o not_o assert_v they_o to_o be_v body_n there_o be_v not_o true_o incorporeal_a substance_n according_a to_o methodius_n but_o the_o deity_n this_o one_o of_o the_o extreme_n mention_v and_o the_o origenick_n hypothesis_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o of_o methodius_n page_n 817_o 820_o already_o observe_v that_o origen_n not_o singular_a in_o this_o opinion_n concern_v humane_a soul_n irenaeus_n philoponus_n joannes_n thessalonicensis_n psellus_n and_o other_o assert_v the_o same_o s._n austin_n in_o his_o de_n gen._n ad_fw-la lit._n grant_v that_o soul_n after_o death_n can_v be_v carry_v to_o any_o corporal_a place_n nor_o local_o move_v without_o a_o body_n himself_o seem_v to_o think_v the_o punishment_n of_o soul_n before_o the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v fantastical_a but_o give_v liberty_n of_o think_v otherwise_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr civ_o d._n he_o conceive_v that_o origenick_n opinion_n not_o improbable_a that_o some_o soul_n after_o death_n and_o before_o the_o resurrection_n may_v suffer_v from_o a_o certain_a fire_n for_o the_o consume_a and_o burn_v up_o of_o their_o dross_n which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o body_n page_n 820_o 822_o hitherto_o show_v how_o the_o ancient_a asserter_n of_o unextended_a incorporeall_n answer_v all_o the_o objection_n make_v against_o they_o but_o especial_o that_o of_o the_o illocality_n and_o immobility_n of_o create_a incorporeall_n namely_o that_o by_o those_o body_n which_o they_o be_v always_o vital_o unite_v to_o they_o be_v localize_v and_o make_v capable_a of_o motion_n according_a to_o that_o of_o origen_n the_o soul_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o body_n for_o local_a motion_n next_o to_o be_v consider_v their_o reason_n for_o this_o assertion_n of_o unextended_a and_o indistant_a substance_n so_o repugnant_a to_o imagination_n page_n 822_o that_o whatsoever_o argument_n do_v evince_v other_o substance_n beside_o body_n the_o same_o against_o the_o atheist_n demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v something_o unextend_v themselves_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v extend_v be_v body_n nevertheless_o other_o argument_n propound_v by_o these_o ancient_n to_o prove_v direct_o unextend_v substance_n plotinus_n his_o first_o to_o prove_v the_o humane_a soul_n and_o mind_n such_o either_o every_o part_n of_o a_o extend_v soul_n be_v soul_n and_o of_o mind_n mind_n or_o not._n if_o the_o latter_a that_o no_o part_n of_o a_o soul_n or_o mind_n be_v by_o itself_o soul_n or_o mind_n then_o can_v the_o whole_a make_v up_o of_o all_o those_o part_n be_v such_o but_o if_o every_o suppose_a part_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v soul_n and_o of_o a_o mind_n mind_n then_o will_v all_o but_o one_o be_v superfluous_a or_o every_o one_o be_v the_o whole_a which_o can_v be_v in_o extend_v thing_n page_n 822_o 824_o again_o plotinus_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v from_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o be_v unextend_v because_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o indivisible_a thing_n that_o perceive_v the_o whole_a sensible_a object_n this_o further_o pursue_v if_o the_o soul_n be_v extend_v then_o must_v it_o either_o be_v one_o physical_a point_n or_o more_o impossible_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v but_o one_o physical_a point_n if_o therefore_o more_o then_o must_v every_o one_o of_o those_o point_n either_o perceive_v a_o point_n of_o the_o object_n and_o no_o more_o or_o else_o the_o whole_a if_o the_o former_a then_o can_v nothing_o perceive_v the_o whole_a nor_o compare_v one_o part_n of_o it_o with_o another_o if_o the_o latter_a then_o will_v every_o man_n have_v innumerable_a perception_n of_o the_o whole_a object_n at_o once_o a_o four_o supposition_n that_o the_o whole_a extend_v soul_n perceive_v both_o the_o whole_a object_n and_o all_o the_o part_n thereof_o no_o part_n of_o this_o soul_n have_v any_o perception_n by_o itself_o not_o to_o be_v make_v because_o the_o whole_a of_o a_o extend_v substance_n nothing_o but_o all_o the_o part_n and_o so_o if_o no_o part_n have_v any_o perception_n the_o whole_a can_v have_v none_o moreover_o to_o say_v the_o whole_a soul_n perceive_v all_o and_o no_o part_n of_o it_o any_o thing_n be_v indeed_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o unextend_v and_o to_o have_v no_o distant_a part_n page_n 824_o 826_o again_o this_o philosopher_n will_v prove_v the_o same_o thing_n from_o the_o sympathy_n or_o homopathy_n which_o be_v in_o animal_n it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o perceive_v pain_n in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o foot_n and_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a bulk_n of_o the_o body_n page_n 826_o last_o he_o dispute_v further_a from_o the_o rational_a energy_n a_o magnitude_n can_v not_o understand_v what_o have_v no_o magnitude_n and_o what_o be_v indivisible_a whereas_o we_o have_v a_o notion_n not_o only_o of_o latitude_n indivisible_a as_o to_o thickness_n and_o of_o longitude_n as_o to_o breadth_n but_o also_o of_o a_o mathematical_a point_n every_o way_n indivisible_a we_o have_v notion_n of_o thing_n also_o that_o have_v neither_o magnitude_n nor_o site_n etc._n etc._n again_o all_o the_o abstract_a essence_n of_o thing_n indivisible_a we_o conceive_v extend_v thing_n themselves_o unextend_o the_o thought_n of_o a_o mile_n or_o a_o thousand_o miles_n distance_n take_v up_o no_o more_o room_n in_o the_o soul_n than_o the_o thought_n of_o a_o inch_n or_o of_o a_o mathematical_a point_n moreover_o be_v that_o which_o perceive_v in_o we_o a_o magnitude_n it_o can_v not_o be_v equal_a to_o every_o sensible_a and_o alike_o perceive_v thing_n great_a and_o lesser_a than_o itself_o page_n 827_o 828_o beside_o which_o they_o may_v argue_v thus_o that_o we_o as_o we_o can_v conceive_v extension_n without_o cogitation_n and_o again_o cogitation_n without_o extension_n from_o whence_o their_o distinction_n and_o separability_n be_v inferrible_a so_o can_v we_o not_o conceive_v cogitation_n with_o extension_n not_o the_o length_n breadth_n and_o thickness_n of_o a_o thought_n nor_o the_o half_n or_o a_o three_o or_o twenty_o part_n thereof_o nor_o that_o it_o be_v figurate_a round_a or_o angular_a thought_n therefore_o must_v be_v nonentities_a if_o whatsoever_o be_v unextend_v be_v nothing_o as_o also_o metaphysical_a truth_n they_o have_v neither_o dimension_n nor_o figure_n so_o volition_n and_o passion_n knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n itself_o justice_n and_o temperance_n if_o the_o thing_n belong_v to_o soul_n and_o mind_n be_v unextend_v then_o must_v themselves_o be_v so_o again_o if_o mind_n and_o soul_n have_v distant_a part_n than_o can_v none_o of_o they_o be_v one_o but_o many_o substance_n if_o life_n divide_v than_o a_o half_n of_o it_o will_v not_o be_v life_n last_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o they_o may_v not_o be_v as_o well_o real_o as_o intellectual_o divisible_a nor_o can_v a_o theist_n deny_v but_o that_o divine_a power_n may_v cleave_v a_o thought_n together_o with_o the_o soul_n wherein_o it_o be_v into_o many_o piece_n page_n 828_o 829_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a incorporealist_n therefore_o this_o that_o in_o nature_n two_o kind_n of_o substance_n the_o first_o of_o they_o passive_a bulk_n or_o distant_a and_o extend_v substance_n which_o be_v all_o one_o thing_n without_o another_o and_o therefore_o as_o many_o substance_n as_o part_n into_o which_o it_o can_v be_v divide_v essential_o antitypous_a one_o magnitude_n join_v to_o another_o always_o stand_v without_o it_o and_o make_v the_o whole_a so_o much_o big_a body_n all_z outside_o have_v nothing_o within_o no_o internal_a energy_n nor_o any_o action_n beside_o local_a motion_n which_o it_o be_v also_o passive_a to_o page_n 829_o be_v there_o no_o other_o substance_n beside_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o motion_n action_n life_n cogitation_n intellection_n volition_n but_o all_o will_v be_v a_o dead_a lump_n nor_o can_v any_o one_o thing_n penetrate_v another_o wherefore_o another_o substance_n who_o character_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o active_a nature_n life_n self-activity_n cogitation_n which_o no_o mode_n or_o accident_n of_o extension_n it_o have_v more_o of_o entity_n in_o it_o nor_o be_v these_o two_o extension_n and_o life_n inadequate_a conception_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n a_o thinker_n a_o monad_n or_o one_o single_a substance_n not_o conceivable_a how_o the_o several_a part_n of_o a_o extend_v substance_n shall_v joint_o concur_v to_o produce_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thought_n page_n 829_o 830_o the_o energy_n of_o these_o two_o substance_n very_o different_a the_o one_o nothing_o but_o local_a motion_n or_o translation_n from_o place_n to_o place_n a_o mere_a outside_o thing_n the_o other_o cogitation_n a_o internal_a energy_n or_o in_o the_o inside_n of_o that_o which_o think_v which_o inside_n of_o the_o think_v nature_n have_v no_o length_n breadth_n or_o profundity_n no_o outswelling_a tumour_n because_o than_o it_o will_v
of_o a_o great_a abate_v their_o infinite_a right_n and_o yield_v to_o term_n of_o equality_n with_o other_o and_o subjection_n to_o a_o common_a power_n page_n 891_o where_o these_o atheist_n first_o slander_n humane_a nature_n and_o then_o debase_v justice_n and_o civil_a authority_n make_v it_o the_o ignoble_a and_o bastardly_a brat_n of_o fear_n or_o a_o lesser_a evil_n submit_v to_o out_o of_o necessity_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o a_o great_a according_a to_o which_o atheistick_a hypothesis_n no_o man_n be_v willing_o just._n this_o no_o new_a invention_n of_o the_o writer_n de_fw-fr cive_z but_o the_o old_a atheistick_a generation_n of_o justice_n and_o of_o a_o body_n politic_a civil_a society_n and_o sovereignty_n before_o plato_n time_n it_o be_v full_o describe_v in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n where_o the_o philosopher_n conclude_v justice_n according_a to_o these_o to_o be_v but_o a_o middle_a thing_n betwixt_o the_o best_a and_o the_o worst_a love_v not_o as_o good_a in_o itself_o but_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o man_n imbecility_n or_o that_o justice_n be_v indeed_o another_o man_n good_a and_o the_o evil_a of_o he_o that_o be_v just._n the_o same_o hypothesis_n also_o concern_v justice_n as_o a_o factitious_a thing_n that_o spring_v only_o from_o fear_n and_o imbecility_n and_o be_v choose_v but_o as_o a_o lesser_a evil_n insi_v on_o by_o epicurus_n page_n 891_o 893_o the_o vain_a attempt_n of_o our_o modern_a atheistick_a politician_n to_o make_v justice_n by_o art_n when_o there_o be_v none_o by_o nature_n first_o by_o renounce_v and_o transfer_v man_n right_a by_o will_n and_o word_n for_o if_o nothing_o natural_o unlawful_a then_o can_v no_o man_n by_o will_n and_o word_n make_v any_o thing_n unlawful_a to_o himself_o what_o make_v by_o will_n may_v be_v destroy_v by_o will._n the_o ridiculous_a conceit_n of_o these_o atheistick_a politician_n that_o injustice_n be_v nothing_o but_o dati_fw-la repetitio_fw-la and_o such_o a_o absurdity_n in_o life_n as_o be_v in_o disputation_n when_o a_o man_n deny_v a_o proposition_n he_o have_v before_o grant_v no_o real_a evil_n in_o the_o man_n but_o only_o a_o relative_n incongruity_n in_o he_o as_o a_o citizen_n again_o these_o justice-makers_n and_o authority-makers_n pretend_v to_o derive_v their_o factitious_a justice_n from_o pact_n and_o covenant_n but_o pact_n and_o covenant_n without_o natural_a justice_n as_o themselves_o confess_v nothing_o but_o word_n and_o breath_n and_o therefore_o can_v have_v no_o force_n to_o oblige_v wherefore_o they_o make_v another_o pretence_n also_o from_o certain_a counterfeit_n law_n of_o nature_n of_o their_o own_o devise_v that_o be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a juggle_a equivocation_n they_o be_v but_o the_o law_n of_o fear_n or_o their_o own_o timorous_a and_o cowardly_a complexion_n they_o ridiculous_o dance_v round_o in_o a_o circle_n when_o they_o derive_v the_o obligation_n of_o civil_a law_n from_o covenant_n of_o covenant_n from_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o law_n of_o nature_n again_o from_o civil_a law_n their_o vain_a attempt_n by_o art_n to_o consociate_v what_o nature_n have_v dissociate_v like_o tie_v knot_n in_o the_o wind_n or_o water_n their_o artificial_a obligation_n or_o ligament_n by_o which_o the_o member_n of_o their_o leviathan_n be_v hold_v together_o more_o slender_a than_o cobweb_n page_n 893_o 895_o these_o artificial_a justice-makers_n and_z obligation-makers_n sensible_a of_o the_o weakness_n of_o these_o attempt_n artificial_o to_o consociate_v what_o nature_n have_v dissociate_v therefore_o fly_v at_o last_o from_o art_n to_o force_v and_o power_n make_v their_o sovereign_n to_o reign_v only_o in_o fear_n this_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o that_o opinion_n that_o all_o obligation_n be_v derive_v from_o law_n that_o be_v the_o command_n of_o he_o who_o have_v power_n to_o compel_v if_o obligation_n to_o obey_v civil_a law_n only_o from_o fear_n of_o punishment_n then_o be_v no_o man_n oblige_v to_o hazard_v his_o life_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o his_o prince_n and_o whoever_o can_v promise_v themselves_o impunity_n may_v just_o disobey_v if_o civil_a sovereign_n reign_n only_o in_o fear_n then_o be_v their_o authority_n nothing_o but_o force_n and_o power_n will_v justify_v rebellion_n last_o if_o civil_a right_n or_o authority_n nothing_o but_o force_n and_o violence_n then_o can_v it_o not_o last_v long_o what_o natural_a prevail_v against_o what_o be_v violent_a page_n 895_o wherefore_o since_o civil_a authority_n and_o body_n politic_a can_v neither_o be_v mere_o artificial_a nor_o yet_o violent_a thing_n there_o must_v be_v some_o natural_a vinculum_fw-la to_o hold_v they_o together_o such_o as_o will_v both_o oblige_v subject_n to_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o sovereign_n and_o sovereign_n in_o command_v to_o seek_v the_o good_a of_o their_o subject_n something_o of_o a_o common_a public_a and_o conglutinate_v nature_n which_o no_o other_o then_o natural_a justice_n the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o found_v in_o justice_n of_o which_o civil_a authority_n a_o participation_n sovereignty_n no_o creature_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o man_n will_n but_o have_v a_o stamp_n of_o divinity_n upon_o it_o have_v not_o god_n make_v a_o city_n man_n neither_o by_o art_n or_o political_a enchantment_n nor_o by_o mere_a force_n can_v have_v make_v any_o the_o whole_a world_n one_o city_n of_o god_n and_o rational_a being_n the_o civil_a sovereign_a no_o leviathan_n that_o be_v no_o beast_n but_o a_o god_n he_o reign_v not_o in_o mere_a brutish_a force_n and_o fear_v but_o in_o natural_a justice_n and_o conscience_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o nevertheless_o need_v of_o force_n and_o fear_v too_o to_o compel_v some_o to_o their_o duty_n nor_o be_v the_o sovereign_n sword_n here_o alone_o sufficient_a but_o he_o must_v reign_v also_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n almighty_n page_n 895_o 896_o the_o second_o atheistick_a pretence_n to_o make_v religion_n inconsistent_a with_o civil_a sovereignty_n because_o it_o limit_n and_o confine_n that_o which_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v infinite_a the_o reply_n that_o the_o atheist_n infinite_a right_n and_o authority_n of_o civil_a sovereign_n be_v nothing_o but_o belluine_a liberty_n but_o true_a right_n and_o authority_n be_v essential_o found_v in_o natural_a justice_n there_o be_v no_o authority_n to_o command_v where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o obligation_n to_o obey_v and_o command_v not_o create_v obligation_n but_o presuppose_v it_o without_o which_o they_o will_v signify_v nothing_o the_o first_o original_a obligation_n not_o from_o will_n but_o nature_n the_o error_n of_o those_o theist_n who_o derive_v all_o obligation_n to_o moral_a thing_n from_o the_o will_n and_o positive_a command_n of_o god_n as_o threaten_v punishment_n and_o promise_v reward_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o no_o man_n be_v good_a and_o just_a but_o by_o accident_n only_o and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o something_o else_o justice_z a_o different_a species_n of_o good_a from_o that_o of_o private_a utility_n infinite_a justice_n as_o absurd_a as_o a_o infinite_a rule_n or_o measure_n if_o no_o infinite_a justice_n than_o no_o infinite_a right_n and_o authority_n god_n own_o authority_n bound_v by_o justice_n his_o will_n rule_v by_o justice_n and_o not_o justice_n by_o his_o will._n atheist_n unde●_n a_o pretence_n of_o give_v civil_a sovereign_n infinite_a right_n real_o divest_v they_o of_o all_o right_a and_o authority_n leave_v they_o nothing_o but_o brutish_a force_n prove_v here_o that_o the_o summae_fw-la potestates_fw-la must_v of_o necessity_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d page_n 896_o 898_o the_o last_o atheistick_a pretence_n for_o the_o inconsistency_n of_o religion_n with_o civil_a power_n because_o conscience_n be_v private_a judgement_n of_o good_a and_o evil._n answer_v that_o not_o religion_n but_o atheism_n introduce_v such_o private_a judgement_n as_o be_v absolute_o inconsistent_a with_o civil_a sovereignty_n it_o acknowledge_v nothing_o in_o nature_n that_o tend_v to_o public_a and_o common_a good_a but_o make_v private_a appetite_n the_o only_a rule_n or_o measure_n of_o good_a and_o utility_n of_o justice_n the_o desperate_a consequence_n from_o hence_o th●t_v private_a utility_n may_v justify_v rebellion_n and_o parricide_n the_o atheist_n profess_v assertion_n that_o they_o who_o have_v once_o rebel_v may_v just_o defend_v themselves_o afterward_o by_o force_n though_o private_a person_n must_v make_v a_o judgement_n in_o conscience_n for_o themselves_o the_o atheist_n public_a conscience_n be_v nonsense_n and_o contradiction_n yet_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o conscience_n not_o private_a but_o public_a except_o only_o to_o mistake_v fanatic_n who_o therefore_o sometime_o make_v a_o pretence_n of_o conscience_n and_o religion_n in_o order_n to_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n religion_n and_o conscience_n oblige_v subject_n in_o all_o lawful_a thing_n active_o to_o obey_v the_o sovereign_a power_n in_o unlawful_a not_o to_o resist_v page_n 898_o 899_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a book_n that_o all_o the_o atheistick_a ground_n be_v full_o confute_v and_o the_o impossibility_n of_o atheism_n demonstrate_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o original_a and_o head_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v no_o blind_a and_o inconscious_a nature_n but_o a_o perfect_a understanding_n be_v selfexistent_a who_o have_v make_v all_o that_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v make_v and_o after_o the_o best_a manner_n and_o exercise_v a_o just_a providence_n over_o all_o to_o who_o be_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n the_o end_n of_o the_o content_n errata_fw-la page_n 15._o line_n 2._o read_v fourteen_o beside_o p._n 49._o l._n 9_o to_o 16._o read_v and_o thus_o body_n p._n 61._o l._n 8._o read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 63.9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 66.10_o unextend_v 76.25_o deal_n but._n lin._n ult_n read_v to_o this_o purpose_n 102._o l._n ult_n deal_n with_o 103._o l._n 3_o 4._o read_v can_v not_o rise_v from_o a_o egg_n of_o the_o night_n nor_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o chaos_n but_o must_v be_v something_o 106._o title_n r._n hylozoist_a 168.19_o r._n irregularity_n 173.19_o 20._o reason_n and_o underwit_n line_n 37._o a_o perfect_a 201.9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 212.34_o read_v scholiast_n upon_o he_o write_v thus_o 231.27_o plures_fw-la erunt_fw-la 251.12_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 276.22_o longinianus_fw-la 299.36_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 300.5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 304.30_o excerption_n 331.9_o manifest_v 339._o title_n r._n invisible_a 344.17_o phornutus_n 351._o false_o print_v 411._o l._n 22._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 354._o f._n pr._n 414._o l._n 27._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 355.9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 357.37_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 358.21_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 363.17_o deal_n justin_n martyr_n 364.31_o read_v third_z and_o four_o verse_n 379.31_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 385.31_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 397._o title_n read_v very_o good_n 404._o marg._n l._n ult_n r._n l._n 10.433.30_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 457.18_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 461.10_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lin._n 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 482.29_o by_o he_o determine_v 508.14_o respective_o 516.14_o his_o fecundity_n 518.4_o adore_a 519.30_o nature_n or_o nature_n 543_o 29._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 549.13_o as_o a_o image_n in_o a_o glass_n 553.37_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 566.34_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 582.2_o the_o word_n 585.18_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 587.6_o son_n and_o grandson_n 620.31_o it_o be_v there_o 624._o title_n add_v trinity_n 632.31_o if_o need_n be_v for_o another_o 684.17_o therefore_o not_o 696._o l._n ult_n as_o it_o be_v .717.39_o and_o also_o 742.5_o similar_v atom_n 745.23_o that_o their_o soul_n can_v 752.2_o 3_o 4._o read_v proclus_n and_o other_o platonist_n express_o deny_v it_o to_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unmake_v or_o selfexistent_a and_o 753.8_o no_o not_o that_o 765.24_o matter_n together_o 777.37_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 787.16_o incrassated_a 794.31_o the_o vnevenness_n 798.11_o earth_n in_o line_n 33._o deal_n it_o 805._o marg._n l._n 14._o solveret_fw-la 816.35_o aught_o to_o be_v 831._o l._n penult_n extend_v outside_o and_o a_o vnextended_a inside_n 843.38_o deal_n yet_o 883._o marg._n l._n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 884.35_o be_v one_o reason_n finis_fw-la